|
ATTILA AND THE HUNS
(406-453)
THE ASIATIC BACKGROUND
THE Asiatic
background has its basis in the immense zone of steppes and deserts which
stretches from the Caspian Sea to the Khin-gan Mountains, and is
divided into two regions by the Pamir and the Thian Shan ranges. The
western region, like the whole lowland district of West Asia, even to the
extreme north, is a deserted sea-bed; the eastern (Tarim basin and Gobi)
seems formerly to have been covered with great fresh-water lakes. The
water-basins began to evaporate and to shrink to inland seas, while the intervening
country became a desert. The largest remains of former enormous water-basins
are the salt Caspian Sea and the sweet-water Aral Sea. In both regions all the
moisture that falls evaporates, so that no rivers reach the open sea; most of
them ooze away in the sand, and only the greatest, such as the Syr, Amu,
Hi, Chu, Tarim, flow into large inland seas. The fact that the evaporation
is greater than the fall of moisture, and that the latter takes place chiefly
in the cold season, has important consequences, which account for the desert
nature of the land. All the salt which is released by the weathering and
decomposition of the soil remains in the ground, and only in the higher regions
with greater falls of moisture, and by the banks of rivers is the soil
sufficiently lixiviated to be fit for cultivation. Everywhere else is steppe
and desert absolutely uncultivable. The surface of the land can be divided into
six categories: sand-deserts, grave deserts, salt-steppes, loam-steppes,
loess-land, and rocky mountains.
Of these the
sand-deserts form by far the greatest part. They consist of fine drift-sand,
which the driving storm wind forms into sickleshaped shifting dunes (barkhans).
The loose drift-sand is waterless, and for the most part without vegetation; the barkhans,
however, here and there display a few poor saxaul and other shrubs; human life
is impossible. The gravel-deserts, also very extensive, which form the
transition between the sand deserts and the steppes, have a sparse vegetation
and serve the nomads as grazing-grounds in their wanderings to and from winter
quarters and summer pastures. The adjoining salt-steppes, consisting of loam
and sand, are so impregnated with salt that the latter settles down on the
surface like rime. In spring they bear a scanty vegetation, which, on account
of its saline nature, affords excellent pasture for numerous flocks of sheep.
During the rain of autumn and spring the loam-steppes, consisting of loess-soil
mixed with much sand, are covered with luxuriant verdure and myriads of wild
flowers, especially tulips, and, on the drier ground, with camel-thorn (Alhagi camelorum),
without which the camel could not exist for any length of time. These steppes
form the real pastures of the nomads. In the loess-land agriculture and
gardening are only possible where the soil has been sufficiently softened by
rainfall and artificial canals, and is constantly irrigated. It forms the
sub-soil of all cultivable oases. Without irrigation the soil becomes in summer
as hard as concrete, and its vegetation dies completely. The oases comprise
only two per cent, of the total area of Turkestan. As a rule the rocky
mountains are quite bare; they consist of black gleaming stone cracked by frost
and heat, and are waterless.
Roughly speaking
these differences of vegetation follow one another from south to north, viz.
the salt-, the sand-, and the grass-steppes. A little below 50 N. latitude the
landscape of West Asia changes in consequence of a greater fall of moisture.
The undrained lakes become less frequent, the rivers reach the sea (Ishim,
Tobol, etc.) and trees-appear. Here begins, as a transition to the compact
forest-land, the tree-steppe on the very fertile "black earth." On
the Yenisei are park-like districts with splendid grass plains, and luxuriant
trees. Northward come endless pine-forests, and beyond them, towards the Arctic
Sea, is the moss-steppe or tundra.
The climate is
typically continental, with icy cold winters, hot summers, cold nights, and hot
days with enormous fluctuations of temperature. The warmth increases quickly
from winter to spring and decreases just as quickly from summer to autumn. In
West Turkestan, the summer is almost cloudless and rainless, and at this time
the steppes become deserts. On account of the dryness little snow falls; as a
rule it remains loose and is whirled aloft by the north-east storm wind (buran).
These storm burans are just as terrible as the summer storms
of salt-dust in Trans-Caspia at a temperature of 104 to 113 Fahr.
Considering that in summer the temperature sometimes reaches 118 in the shade,
exceeding body-heat by 20, and that in winter it sinks below 31, and further
that the heat, especially in the sand-deserts, reaches a degree at which the
white of egg coagulates, the climate, even if not deadly, should be very
injurious to man; Hindustan, which is far less hot, enervates the European on
account of the greater moisture, and has changed the Aryan, once so energetic,
to the weak and cowardly Hindu. Nevertheless the contrary is the case. The
climate of Turkestan is wholesome, and its people are long-lived and healthy,
and that especially in the hot summer, on account of the unparalleled dryness
of the air. Once acclimatised, one bears the heat very well, and likewise the
extreme cold of winter. The climate of Central Asia furthers a rapid bodily and
mental development and premature ageing, as well as corpulence, especially
among the Altaians. Obesity is even regarded as a distinction, and it became so
native to the mounted nomads that it accompanied them to Europe; it is
characteristic of all the nomads who have invaded Europe; and Hippocrates mentions
it expressly as a characteristic of the Scythians. The climate of Turkestan
also influences the character, leading to an apathy which creates indifference
to the heaviest blows of fate, and even accompanies the condemned to the
scaffold.
The entire West
Asiatic region from the salt-steppes to the compact forest-land forms one
economic whole. The well-watered northern part, which remains green throughout
the summer, feeds countless herds in the warm season, but affords no pasturage
in winter owing to the deep snow. On the other hand, the southern part, which
is poor in water the grass-, sand-, and salt-steppes is uninhabitable in
summer. Thus the northern part provides summer pastures, the southern the
Aral-Caspian basin winter pastures to one and the same nomad people.
The nomad then is
the son and product of the peculiar and variable constitution which
nevertheless is an indivisible economic whole of the Asiatic background. Any
agriculture, worthy of the name, is impossible, in the steppes and deserts the
few oases excepted on account of the dryness of the summer, when animals also
find no food. Life on the steppes and deserts is only possible in connection
either with the Siberian grass-region or with the mountains. This life is
necessarily extremely hard and restless for man and beast and it creates a
condition of nomadism, which must at the same time be a mounted nomadism,
seeing that a wagon would be an impossibility in the long trackless wanderings
over mountain and valley, river and swamp, and that goods and chattels,
together with the disjoinable dwellings, can only be carried on the
backs of beasts of burden.
Setting aside the
Glacial Period and the small Bruckner cycle of 35 years or so, the climatic
changes of Central Asia, according to Huntington, fall into cycles of several
hundred years’ duration within which the aridity rises and sinks considerably.
All Central Asia has undergone a series of climatic pulsations during historic
times. There seems to be strong evidence that at the time of Christ or earlier
the climate was much moister and more propitious than it now is. Then during
the first few centuries of the Christian era there appears to have been an
epoch of increasing aridity. It culminated about AD 500, at
which time the climate appears to have been drier than at present. Next came an
epoch of more propitious climate which reached its acme about AD 900.
There is a little evidence of a second epoch of aridity which was especially
marked in the twelfth century. Finally, in the later Middle Ages, a rise in the
level of the Caspian Sea and the condition of certain ruins render it probable
that climatic conditions once again became somewhat favourable, only to give
place ere long to the present aridity.
But Central Asia
has not been, since the beginning of historic records, in a state of
desiccation. The process of geological desiccation was already ended in
prehistoric times, and even the oldest historic accounts testify to the same
climatic conditions as those of today. The earliest Babylonian kings maintained
irrigation works, and Hammurabi had canals made through the land, one of which
bore his name. Thus, as at present, without artificial irrigation agriculture
was not possible there 4200 years ago. Palestine’s climate too has not changed
in the least since Biblical times: its present waste condition is the result of
Turkish mismanagement, and Biot has proved from the cultivated plants
grown in the earliest times that the temperature of China has remained the same
for 3300 years. Curtius Rufus and Arrian give similar accounts of
Bactria.
Amid the enormous
wastes there are countless sand-buried ruins of populous cities, monasteries,
and villages and choked-up canals standing on ground won from the waste by
systematic canalisation; where the system of irrigation was destroyed, the
earlier natural state, the desert, returned. The causes of such destruction are
manifold.
1. Earthquake.
2. Violent
rain-spouts after which the river does not find its former bed, and the canals
receive no more water from it.
3. On the highest
edge of the steppe, at the foot of the glacier, lie enormous flat heaps
of débris, and here the canalisation begins. If one side of this heap
rises higher than the other, the direction of the current is shifted, and the
oases nurtured by the now forsaken stream become derelict. But the habitable
ground simply migrates with the river. If, for example, a river altered its
course four times in historic times, three series of ruins remain behind; but
it is erroneous simply to add these ruins together, and to conclude from them
that the whole once formed a flourishing land which has become waste, when in
reality the three series of settlements did not flourish side by side but
consecutively. This fallacy vitiates all accounts which assume a progressive or
periodic desiccation as the chief cause of the abandonment of oases.
4. Continuous
drought in consequence of which the rivers become so waterless that they cannot
feed the canals of the lower river-basin, and thus the oases affected must become
parched, and are not always resettled in more favourable years.
5. Neglect of the
extreme care demanded in the administration of the canal system. If irrigation
is extended in the district next the mountain from which the water comes, just
so much water is taken from the lower oases. But in this case too nothing is
lost which cannot be replaced in another direction: vice versa if an oasis on
the upper course of the river disappears through losing its canal system, the
lower river course thus becomes well-watered and makes possible the formation
of a new oasis.
6. The most
terrible mischief is the work of enemies. In order to make the whole oasis
liable to tribute they need only seize the main canal; and the nomads often
blindly plundered and destroyed everything. A single raid was enough to
transform hundreds of oases into ashes and desert. The nomads moreover not only
ruined countless cities and villages of Central Asia, but they also denuded the
steppe itself, and promoted drift-sand by senseless uprooting of trees and
bushes for the sake of firewood. But for them, according to Berg, there would
be little drifts and in Central Asia, for, in his opinion, all sand-formations
must in time become firm. All the sand-deserts which he observed on the Aral
Sea and in Semiryechensk were originally firm, and even now most of
them are still kept firm by the vegetation.
With the varied
dangers of irrigation systems it is impossible to decide in the case of each
group of ruins what causes have produced them; it is therefore doubtful whether
we can place in the foreground the secular changes of climate. It is not even
true that the cultivation of the oases throve better in the damper and cooler
periods than in the arid and hot ones. Thus the oases of Turfan in Chinese Turkestan,
which is so extremely arid and so unendurably hot in summer, are exceptionally
fertile. We may therefore conclude that the cultivation of the oases was
considerably more extended in the damper and cooler periods, but considerably
less productive than in the arid and hot ones of today.
Changes in the
volume of water of single rivers and lakes are clearly apparent within short
periods, and these lead to frequent local migrations of the peasant population
and to new constructions as well as to the abandonment of irrigation canals.
Thus there is here a continual local fluctuation in the settlements, but
history knows nothing of regular migrations of agriculturists. Still less is an
unfavourable climatic change the cause of the nomad invasions of Europe. The
nomad does not remain at all during the summer in the parched steppe and
desert; and in the periods of increasing aridity and summer heat South Siberia
was warmer and the mountain glaciers retreated, and hence the pastures in both
these directions were extended. The only consequence of this was that the
distance between summer and winter pastures increased and the nomad had to
wander further and quicker. The computation is correct in itself, that the
number of animals that can be reared to the square mile depends on and varies
with the annual rainfall; but the nomad is not hampered by square miles; the
poorer or richer the growth of grass the shorter or longer time he remains, and
he is accustomed from year to year to fluctuations in the abundance of his
flocks. Moreover a shifting of the winter pastures is not impossible, for their
autumn and spring vegetation is not destroyed by a progressive aridity, and if
the water current changes its bed, the nomad simply follows it. Further, the
effect of a secular progressive aridity is spread over so many generations that
it is not catastrophic for any one of them.
The nomad
invasions of China and Europe must therefore have had other causes; and we know
something about the invasions of several nomad hordes of the Avars, Turks
(Osmans), and Cumans, for example.
Since the second
half of the fifth century AD that is, the time to which
Huntington assigns the greatest aridity there had existed in the Oxus basin the
powerful empire of the Ephthalite horde, on the ruins of which the
empire of the West Turks was founded in the middle of the sixth century. Had
Central Asia been at that time so arid and therefore poor in pasture, the then
victorious horde would have driven out the other hordes in order to secure for
themselves more pasture land. Yet exactly the opposite took place; the Turks
enslaved the other hordes, and when the Avars fled to Europe, the
Turkish Khagan claimed them back at the Byzantine Court. In like manner the
Turks (Osmans) fled from the sword of the Mongols in 1225 from Khorasan to
Armenia, and in 1235 the Cumans fled to Hungary. The violence of the Mongols is
strikingly described by Gibbon: “from the Caspian to the Indus they ruined a
tract of many hundred miles which was adorned with the habitations and labours
of mankind, and five centuries have not been sufficient to repair the ravages
of four years”. Therefore the main cause of the nomad invasions of Europe is
not increasing aridity but political changes.
There remains the
question: How did the nomads originate? On the theory of a progressive
desiccation it is assumed that the Aryan peasantry of Turkestan were compelled
to take to a nomad life through the degeneration of their fields to steppes and
wastes. But the peasant bound to the soil is incapable of a mode of life so
unsettled, and requiring of him much new experience. Robbed of his corn-fields
and reduced to beggary, could he be at the same time so rich as to procure
himself the herds of cattle necessary to his existence, and so gifted with
divination as suddenly to wander with them in search of pasture over
immeasurable distances? A decrease of cultivable soil would bring about only a
continual decrease in the number of inhabitants. The peasant as such
disappeared, emigrated, or perished, and his home became a desert, and was
occupied by another people who knew from experience how to make use of it in
its changed state, i.e. as winter grazing-ground. This new
people must have been already nomadic, and have made their way from the
pastures of the North and therefore they must have belonged to the Altaian
race.
The delta oases
have been the home of man from early prehistoric time, throughout Turkestan and
northern Persia. The two oldest culture strata of Anau prove that the
settlers of the first Culture cultivated wheat and barley, had rectangular
houses of air-dried bricks, but only wild animals at first, out of which were
locally domesticated the long horned ox, the pig, and horse, and successively
two breeds of sheep. The second Culture had the domestic ox, both long- and
short-horned, the pig, and the horse. The domestic goat, camel, and dog appear,
and a new hornless breed of sheep. The cultivation of cereals was discovered in
Asia long before BC 8000. The domestication of cattle, pigs,
and sheep, and probably of the horse, was accomplished at Anau between BC 8000
and 6800. Consequently, the agricultural stage preceded the nomadic shepherd
stage in Asia. It follows, therefore, that before domestication of animals was
accomplished, mankind in Central Asia was divided sharply into two classes
settled agriculturists on the one hand, and hunters who wandered within a
limited range on the other hand. When the nomadic hunters became shepherds,
they necessarily wandered between ever-widening limits as the seasons and
pasturage required for increasing herds. The establishment of the first
domestic breeds of pigs, long-horned cattle, large sheep and horses, was
followed by a deteriorating climate which may have as Pumpelly, though
questionably, assumes changed these to smaller breeds. Dr Duerst identifies
the second breed of sheep with the turbary sheep (Torfschaf), and the
pig with the turbary pig (Torfschwein), which appear as already
domesticated in the neolithic stations of Europe. They must therefore
have been descendants of those domesticated on the oases of the Anau district.
They make their
appearance in European neolithic stations apparently
contemporaneously with an immigration of a people of a round-headed Asiatic
type which seems to have infiltrated gradually among the prevailing long-headed
Europeans. The presumption is, therefore, that these animals were brought from
Asia by this round-headed people, and that we have in this immigration perhaps
the earliest post-glacial factor in the problem of Asiatic influence in
European racial as well as cultural origins, for they brought with them both
the art of cattle-breeding and some knowledge of agriculture.
The skulls of the
first and second cultures in Anau are all dolichocephalic or
mesocephalic, without a trace of the round-headed element. We are therefore
justified in assuming that the domestication and the forming of the several
breeds of domestic animals were effected by a long-headed people. And since the
people of the two successive cultures were settled oasis-agriculturists and
breeders, we may assume as probable that agriculture and settled life in towns
on the oases originated among people of a dolichocephalic type. Since Dr Duerst identifies
the second breed of sheep established during the first culture of Anau,
with the turbary sheep in Europe, contemporaneously with skulls of the
round-headed Galcha type, it should follow that the domestic animals
of the European neolithic stations were brought thither, together
with wheat and barley, by round-headed immigrants (of an Asiatic type)
Since the original
agriculturists and breeders were long-headed, it seems probable that the
immigrants were broad-headed nomads who, having acquired from the oasis people
domestic animals and rudimentary agriculture of the kind still practised by the
shepherd nomads of Central Asia, infiltrated among the neolithic settlements
of Eastern and Central Europe, and adopted the stone-implement culture of the
hunting and fishing peoples among whom they came. In this connection it is not
without significance that throughout the whole historical period, the
combination of settled town life and agriculture has been the fundamental
characteristic of the Aryan-speaking Galchas, and of the Iranians
inhabiting Western Central Asia and the Persian plateau, while the peoples of
pure Asiatic mongoloid type have been essentially shepherd nomads, who, as
already shewn, could have become shepherds only after the settled
agriculturists of the oases had established domesticated breeds of cattle.
The origin of the
taming of wild into domestic animals is one of the most difficult problems of
economic history. What was its aim? The use that we make of domestic animals?
Certainly not, for adaptability thereto could only gradually be imparted to the
animals and could not be foreseen; it could not be anticipated that the cow and
the goat would ever give more milk than their young needed, and that beyond the
time of lactation; nor could it be anticipated that sheep not woolly by nature
would develop a fleece. Even for us it would be too uneconomical to breed such
a powerful animal and such a large consumer of fodder as the ox merely for a
supply of meat; and besides beef is not readily eaten in Central Asia. Moreover
the wild ox is entirely unsuitable for draught, for it is one of the shyest as
well as strongest and most dangerous of animals. And it should be specially emphasised
that a long step lies between taming individual animals and domesticating them,
for as a rule wild animals, however well tamed, do not breed in captivity.
Consequently the domestication was not produced simply by taming or for
economic ends. It is the great service of Eduard Hahn to have laid down the
theory that the domestication involuntary and unforeseen was the result of
forcing for religious purposes certain favourite animals of certain divinities
into reservations where they remained reproductive, and at the same time
gradually lost their original wildness through peaceful contact with man. The
beasts of sacrifice were taken from these enclosures. Thus originated the
castrated ox which quietly let itself be yoked before the sacred car; and by systematic
milking for sacrificial purposes the milk-secretion of the cow and the goat was
gradually increased. Lastly, when man perceived what he had gained from the
animals, he turned to his own use the peculiarities thus produced by enclosure
and gradual domestication.
In general,
cattle-rearing is unknown to the severest kind of nomadism. The ox soon dies of
thirst, and it has not sufficient endurance or speed for the enormous
wanderings; its flesh has little value in the steppe. The animals actually employed
for rearing and food are consequently the sheep (to a less extent the goat as
leader of the sheep flocks), the horse, and here and there the ass; also, in a
smaller number, the two-humped camel (in Turan the one-humped
dromedary as well) as a beast of burden. Where the district admits of it, and
long wanderings are not necessary (e.g. in Mongolia, in the Pamir, in the
Amu-delta, in South Russia, etc.), the Altaian has engaged in cattle-breeding
from the remotest times.
A wealthy
Mongolian possesses as many as 20,000 horses and still more sheep. Rich Kirghiz
sometimes have hundreds of camels, thousands of horses, tens of thousands of
sheep. The minimum for a Kirghiz family of five is 5 oxen, 28 sheep, and 15
horses. Some have fewer sheep, but the number of horses cannot sink below 15,
for a stud of mares, with their foals, is indispensable for the production
of kumiz.
The Turkoman is
poorest in horses. However, the Turkoman horse is the noblest in the whole of
Central Asia, and surpasses all other breeds in speed, endurance, intelligence,
faithfulness, and a marvellous sense of locality; it serves for riding and
milk-giving only, and is not a beast of burden, as are the camel, the
dromedary, or the ox. The Turkoman horse is tall, with long narrow body, long
thin legs and neck, and a small head; it is nothing but skin, bones, muscles,
and sinews, and even with the best attention it does not fatten. The mane is
represented by short bristly hairs. On their predatory expeditions the
Turkomans often cover 650 miles in the waterless desert in five days, and that
with their heavy booty of goods and men. Their horses attain their greatest
speed when they have galloped from 7 to 14 miles, and races over such a
distance as that from London to Bristol are not too much for them. Of course
they owe their powers to the training of thousands of years in the endless
steppes and deserts, and to the continual plundering raids, which demanded the
utmost endurance and privation of which horse and rider were capable. The least
attractive to look at in Turkestan is the Kirghiz horse, which is small,
powerful, and strong-maned. During snow-storm or frost it often does without
food for a long time. It is never sheltered under a roof, and bears 40 Fahr.
in the open air, and the extremest summer heat, during which it can
do without water for from three to four days. It can easily cover 80 miles a
day, and never tastes barley or oats in its life.
The Altaian rides
with a very short stirrup, and thus trotting would be too exhausting both for
man and horse, so as a rule he goes at a walk or a gallop. Instead of the trot
there is another more comfortable movement in which the horse's centre of
gravity moves steadily forward in a horizontal line, and shaking and jolting is
avoided. The horse advances the two left feet one after the other, and then the
two right feet (keeping the time of four threshers); in this way it can cover
ten miles per hour. The most prized horses are the “amblers”, which always move
the two feet on one side simultaneously, and are sometimes so swift that other
horses can scarcely keep up with them at a gallop. Spurs are unknown to the
Altaian, and in the steppe horseshoes are not needed. The nomad spends the
greater part of his life in the saddle; when he is not lying inactive in the
tent he is invariably on horseback. At the markets everybody is mounted. In the
saddle all bargains are struck, meetings are held, kumiz is drunk,
and even sleep is taken. The seller too has his wares felt, furs, carpets,
sheep, goats, calves before, behind, and beneath him on his horse. The
riding-horse must answer promptly to the bridle, and must not betray his master
by neighing during a raid. Therefore the young stallion for mares are not
ridden is taken from the herd with a lasso, and castrated.
The nomads of the
Asiatic background all belong to the Altaian branch of the Ural-Altaian race.
The Altaian primitive type displays the following characteristics : body
compact, strong-boned, small to medium-sized; trunk long; hands and feet often
exceptionally small; feet thin and short, and, in consequence of the peculiar
method of riding (with short stirrup), bent outwards, whence the gait is very
waddling; calves very little developed; head large and brachycephalic; face
broad; cheek-bones prominent; mouth large and broad; jaw mesognathic;
teeth strong and snow-white; chin broad; nose broad and flat; forehead low and
little arched; ears large; eyes considerably wide apart, deep-sunken, and
dark-brown to piercing black; eye-opening narrow, and slit obliquely, with an
almost perpendicular fold of skin over the inner corner (Mongol-fold), and with
elevated outer corner; skin wheat-colour, light-buff (Mongols) to bronze-colour
(Turks); hair coarse, stiff as a horse’s mane, coal-black; beard scanty and
bristly, often entirely wanting, generally only a moustache; bodily strength
considerable; sensitiveness to climatic influences and wounds slight; sight and
hearing incredibly keen; memory extraordinary.
The Ural-Altaian
languages branch off as follows :
Uralish : Samo-yeddish,
Finno-Ungrian
Altaic:
Turkish, Mongolish, Manchu-Tungusish
Finno-Ugrian:
Finnish, Permish, Ugrian
Finnish: Lappish
Finnish and Lappish Esthonian,Tcheremiss. Mordvinish
Permish: Zyryanish, Votyakish
Ugrian: Magyarish, Vogulish, Ostyakish
Turkish: Yakutish, Bashkirish, Kirghizigh, Uigurish, Tartarish, Osmanish (Turkish
in the narrower sense)
Mongolish: Buryatish, Kalmuckish, Mongolish (in
the narrower sense)
SOCIAL ORGANIZATION OF THE HUNS
Six to ten
blood-related tents (Mongol, yúrta)—on the average, families of
five to six heads—form a camp (Turk, aul, Mongol, khoton, khotum, Roumanian catun)
which wanders together; even the best grazing-ground would not admit of a
greater number together. The leader of the camp is the eldest member of that
family which possesses most animals. Several camps make a clan (Turk, tire,
Mongol, aïmak). Hence there are the general interests of the Clan
and also the individual interests of the camps, which latter frequently
conflict. For the settlement of disputes an authority is necessary, a
personality who through wealth, mental capacity, uprightness, bravery, and wide
relationships is able to protect the clan. As an election of A chief is unknown
to nomads, and they could not agree if it were known, the chieftainship is
usually gained by a violent usurpation, and is seldom recognised generally.
Thus the judgment of the chieftain is mostly a decision to which the parties
submit themselves more or less voluntarily.
Several clans form
a tribe (uruk), several tribes a folk (Turks il,
Mongol, uluss). Conflicts within the tribes and the folks are
settled by a union of the separate clan chieftains in an arbitration procedure
in which each chieftain defends the claims of his clan, but very often the
collective decision is obeyed by none of the parties. In times of unrest great
hordes have formed themselves out of the folks, and at the head of these stood
a Khagan or a Khan. The hordes, like the folks and tribes, form a separate
whole only in so far as they are opposed to other hordes, folks, and tribes.
The horde protects its parts from the remaining hordes, just as does the folk
and the tribe. Thus all three are in a real sense insurance societies for the
protection of common interests.
The organization
based on genealogy is much dislocated by political occurrences, for in the
steppe the peoples, like the drift-sand, are in constant motion. One people
displaces or breaks through another, and so we find the same tribal name among
peoples widely separated from one another. Moreover from the names of great
war-heroes arose tribal names for those often quite motely conglomerations of
peoples who were united for a considerable time under the conqueror’s lead and
then remained together, for example the Seljuks, Uzbegs, Chagatais, Osmans,
and many others. This easy new formation, exchange, and loss of the tribal name
has operated from the earliest times, and the numerous swarms of nomads who
forced their way into Europe under the most various names are really only
different offshoots of the same few nations.
The organization
of the nomads rests on a double principle. The greater unions caused by
political circumstances, having no direct connection with the life and needs of
the people in the desert, often cease soon after the death of their creator; on
the other hand the camps, the clans, and in part the tribes also, retain an
organic life, and take deep root in the life of the people. Not merely the
consciousness of their blood-relationship but the knowledge of the degree of
relationship is thoroughly alive, and every Kirghiz boy knows his jeti-atalar,
that is, the names of his seven forefathers. What is outside this is regarded
as the remoter relationship. Hence a homogeneous political organization of
large masses is unfrequent and transitory, and today among the Turks
it is only the Kara-Kirghiz people of Bast Turkestan—who are rich in herds—that
live under a central government—that of an hereditary Aga-Manap,
beneath whom the Manaps, also hereditary, of the separate tribes, with a
council of the “gray-beards” (aksakals) of the separate clans, rule and
govern the people rather despotically. What among the Turks is the exception,
was from the earliest times known to history the rule among the Mongols, who
were despotically governed by their princes. The Khan wielded unlimited
authority over all. No one dared to settle in any place to which he had not
been assigned. The Khan directed the princes, they the “thousand-men”, the
“thousand-men”, the “hundred-men”, and they the “ten-men”. Whatever was ordered
them was promptly carried out; even certain death was faced without a murmur.
But towards foreigners they were just as barbarous as the Turks. The origin of
despotism among the Altaians is to be traced to a subjugation by another nomad
horde, which among the Turkish Kazak-Kirghiz and the Mongol Kalmucks of the
Volga developed into a nobility (“white bones”, the female sex “white flesh”)
in contrast with the common people (“black bones”, “black flesh”).
The transitoriness
of the wider unions on the one hand, and the indestructibility of the clans and
camps on the other, explain why extensive separations, especially among
the Turko-Tartars, were of constant occurrence. The desert rears to independence
and freedom from restraint small patriarchally-directed family alliances with “gray-beards”
(aksakals) from families of aristocratic strain at their head. These
families boast of their direct descent from some Sultan, Beg, or famous Batyr (“hero”, recte robber,
cattle-thief). But the “gray-beards” mostly exercise the mere shadow of
dominion. The Turkomans say: “We are a people without a head, and we won’t have
one either; among us each is Padishah”; as an appendage to this, “Sahara is
full of Sheikhs”.
The wanderings of
the nomads are incorrectly designated when they are called roaming wanderings,
for not even the hunter "roams". He has his definite hunting-grounds,
and always returns to his accustomed places. Still more regular are the
wanderings of the nomads, however far they extend. The longest are those of the
Kirghiz who winter by the Aral Sea and have their summer pastures ten degrees
of latitude further north in the steppes of Troitsk and Omsk. The
distance, allowing for the zig-zag course, comes to more than 1000 miles, so
that each year the nomad must cover 2OOO miles with all his herds and other goods.
During the winter
the nomad in the desert is, so to speak, a prisoner in his tent, practical,
neat, and comfortable as this is. It is a rotunda 15 feet high, and often over
30 feet broad. Its framework consists of a wooden lattice in six to ten separable
divisions, which can be widened out, or pushed together for packing. Above this
comes the roof-frame of light rafters which come together in a ring above. This
is the opening for air, light, and smoke, and is only covered at night and
during severe cold. Inside a matting of steppe-grass runs round the framework,
and outside is a felt covering bound round with ropes of camel’s hair.
Tent-pegs and ropes protect the tent from being over- turned by the violent
north-east orkan, during which the hearth-fire must be put out. As
the felt absorbs and emits very little heat, the tent is warm in winter, and
cool in summer. Inside the tent the sacks of victuals hang on the points of the
wall-lattice; on the rafters above are the weapons, harness, saddles, and, among
the heathen tribes, the idols. Behind the hearth, the seat of honour for guests
and old men is spread with the best felt and carpets; in front of the hearth is
the place for drinking-vessels and sometimes for fuel, the latter consisting of
camel- and cattle-dung, since firewood is found only in a few places in the
steppes and deserts. The nomad-life admits of only the most necessary and least
breakable utensils : for preparing food for all in the tent there is a large
cast-iron caldron, acquired in Chinese or Russian traffic, with tripod and
tongs; a trunk-like kumiz-vat of four smoked horse-hides thickened
with fat; kumiz-bottles, and water-bottles of leather; wooden
chests, tubs and cans hollowed out of pieces of wood, or gourds; wooden dishes,
drinking-bowls, and spoons; among the slave-hunting Turkomans short and long
chains, manacles, fetters, and iron collars also hung in the tent to the right
of the entrance.
The accommodation
provided by the tent, and the economising of space is astonishing; from long
past times everything has had its assigned place; there is room for forty men
by day, and twenty by night, notwithstanding the many objects hanging and lying
about. The master of the household, with the men, occupies the place of honour;
left and right of the hearth are the sleeping-places (felt, which is rolled up
in the daytime); left of the entrance the wife and the women and children, to
the right the male slaves, do their work. For anyone to leave his wonted place
unnecessarily, or without the order of the master, would be an unheard-of
proceeding. In three-quarters of an hour a large tent can be put up and
furnished, and it can be taken to pieces and packed just as quickly; even with
movables and stores it is so light that two camels suffice to carry it. The
Nogai-Tartars carry their basket-like felt tents, which are only 8 to 10 feet
in diameter, on two-wheeled carts drawn at a trot by small-sized oxen. In the
thirteenth century, under Chinghiz and his followers, the Mongols
also made use of such cart-tents, drawn by one camel, as store-holders, but
only in the Volga-district and not in their own country in Mongolia. They also
put their great tents—as much as thirty feet in diameter—on carts drawn by
twenty-four oxen twelve in a line. The nature of the ground admitted of this
procedure and consequently the tent had not to be taken to pieces at each
stopping-place (as must be done in the steppes and deserts), but only where a
considerable halt was made. In South Russia such wagon-tents date from the oldest
times, and were already in use among the Scythians.
Among a
continually wandering pastoral people the interests of neighbours often
collide, as we know from the Bible-story of Abraham and Lot. Thus a definite
partition of the land comes about. A folk, or a section of a folk—a
tribe—regards a certain stretch of land as its special property, and tolerates
no trespass from any neighbour whatsoever. The tribe, again, consists of clans
and the latter of camps, which, in their turn, regard parts of the whole tribal
district as their own. This produces a very confused medley of districts, over
which the individual camps wander. In spring and autumn the nomad can find
abundant fodder almost everywhere, in consequence of the greater moisture and
luxuriant grass crop. The winter and summer abodes demand definite conditions
for the prosperity of the herds. The winter settlement must not have too severe
a climate, the summer grazing-ground must be as exempt as possible from the
terrific plague of insects. Since many more conditions must be satisfied for
the winter than for the summer pastures, it is the winter quarters which
determine the density of the nomad population. Thus the wealth of a people
accords with the abundance of their winter quarters, and all internal
encounters and campaigns of former centuries are to be regarded as a constant
struggle for the best winter settlements.
In winter,
whenever possible, the same places as have been used for long times past are
occupied; in the deep-lying valley of a once-existing river, not over-exposed
to the wind, with good water, and grazing-places where the snow settles as
little as possible, and the last year’s dung makes the ground warmer and, at
the same time, provides fuel. Here at the end of October the tent, made warmer
by another covering, is pitched, protecting the nomad from the raging
winter buran and the numbing cold. The herds, however, remain
in the open air without a sheltering roof, and must scrape for themselves the
withered shrubs, stalks, and roots from the snow. They get terribly thin;
indeed sheep, camels, and oxen perish when the snow falls deep, and the horses
in scraping for fodder trample down the plants and make them uneatable, or when
ice forms and shuts out sustenance entirely. But in early spring the situation
improves, especially for the sheep, which, from mere skeletons, revive and get
fat on the salt-steppes where a cursory inspection reveals no vegetation on the
glittering crust of salt. The salt-pastures are incomparably more nourishing than
the richest Alpine meadows, and without salt there would be no sheep-rearing
nomads in Central Asia. To freshen the spring-pasturage the steppe is burnt off
as soon as the snow has melted, as the dry last year's steppe-grass gets matted
under the snow, and would retard the sprouting of the new grass; the ground
manured by the ashes then gets luxuriantly green after a few days.
In the middle or
at the end of April, during the lambing of the sheep, and the foaling of the
mares, preparations for striking the winter tent are made. At this time the
animals yield most milk, and a stock of hard cheese (kurut) is made. At
the beginning of May the steppe begins to dry up, and the intolerable insects
appear. Now the goods which are superfluous for the summer are secretly buried,
the tent is struck, and loaded with all necessary goods and chattels on the
decorated camels. It is the day of greatest rejoicing for the nomad, who leaves
his inhospitable winter quarters in festal attire.
The winter
quarters are regarded as the fixed property of the individual tent owners, but
the summer pastures are the common property of the clan. Here each member of
the clan, rich or poor, has in theory the right to settle where he likes. But
the wealthy and illustrious always know how to secure the best places. To
effect this each camp keeps the time of departure to the summer pastures and
the direction to be taken as secret as possible; at the same time it makes an
arrangement with the nearest-related camps, in conformity with which they
suddenly depart in order to reach their goal as quickly as possible. If the
place chosen is already occupied, the next which is still free is taken. At the
beginning of spring, when the grass is still scanty, the camps can remain only
a very short time—often one day or even only half a day—in one place; later on
in their more distant wandering—from well to well—they can stay for weeks in
the same place. At midsummer movement is more rapid, and in autumn, with an
increasing abundance of water, it is again slower. In the sand-desert the nomad
finds the wells covered by drift-sand, and he must dig down to them afresh, if
necessary daily. The regulation of these wanderings is undertaken by the aksakals,
not always according to justice.
The cattle can
easily be taken off by a hostile neighbour, for the steppe is free and open.
Therefore the nomads of the steppes, unlike the nomads of the mountains, do not
split themselves into single families. They constantly need a small war-band to
recover the stolen booty from the enemy. On the other hand, the instinct of
self-preservation often drives a whole people to violate their neighbours’
rights of property. When there is dearth of fodder the cattle are ruined, and
the enterprise and energy of the owner cannot avert calamity. The impoverished
nomad infallibly goes to the wall as a solitary individual, and only seldom is
he, as a former wanderer (tshorva) capable of becoming a despised
settler (tshomru). For he feels it to be the greatest misfortune and
humiliation when he must take to the plough, somewhere by a watercourse on the
edge of the desert; and so long as the loss of all his herds has not hopelessly
crushed him, he does not resign himself to that terrible fate which Mahomet has
proscribed with the words: '”wherever this implement has penetrated, it has
always brought with it servitude and shame”.
In spring, when
severe frost suddenly sets in after the first thaw, and the thin layer of snow
is covered in a single night with a crust of ice an inch thick, the cattle cannot
scrape food out of the snow, and the owner cannot possibly supply a substitute.
When the frost continues hundreds of thousands of beasts perish, and whole
districts previously rich in herds become suddenly poor. So as soon as ice
appears the people affected leave their winter quarters, and penetrate far into
their neighbours' territory until they find food for their herds. If they are
successful a part at least of their cattle is saved, and when the weather
changes they return home. But if all their cattle perish entirely, they must
starve if they are unwilling to rob their wealthy neighbour of a part of his
herds. Bloody feuds occur too in autumn on the return from the summer pastures,
when the horses have become fat and powerful and the longer nights favour and
cover long rides. The nomad now carries out the raids of robbery and revenge
resolved upon and skilfully planned in the summer, and then he goes to his
winter quarters.
But how can these
barbarous robbers live together without exterminating each other? They are
bridled by an old and tyrannical king, invisible to themselves, the deb (custom,
wont). This prohibits robbery and murder, immorality and injustice towards
associates in times of peace; but the strange neighbour is outlawed; to rob,
enslave, or kill him is an heroic deed. The nomads' ideas of justice are
remarkably similar to those of our ancestors. Every offence is regarded as an
injury to the interests of a fellow-man, and is expiated by indemnification of
the loser. Among the Kazak-Kirghiz anyone who has killed a man of the plebs (a
"black bone"), whether wilfully or accidentally makes no difference,
must compensate the relations with a kun (i.e. 1000
sheep or 100 horses or 50 camels). The slaughter of a "white bone"
costs a sevenfold kun. Murder of their own wives, children, and
slaves goes unpunished, since they themselves are the losers. If a Kirghiz
steals an animal, he must restore it together with two of the same value. If a
wrong-doer is unable to pay the fine, his nearest relations, and failing them
the whole camp, must provide it.
The principal food
consists of milk-products—not of the fresh milk itself, which is only taken by
children and the sick. A special Turko-Tartar food is yogurt,
prepared with leaven from curdled milk. The Mongols also eat butter—the more
rancid the more palatable—dripping with dirt, and carried without wrapping in
their hairy greasy coat-pockets. From mare's milk, which yields no cream, kumiz (Kirghiz), tshegan (Mongolish)
is fermented, an extremely nutritious drink which is good for consumption, and
from which by itself life can be sustained. However, it keeps only a few hours,
after which it becomes too sour and effervescent, and so the whole supply must
be drunk at once. In summer, with an abundance of mares, there is such a
superfluity of kumiz that hospitality is unlimited, and half
Altai is always drunk. The Turkomans and Kara-Kalpaks, who possess few horses
and no studs, drink kumiz seldom. The much-drunk airan from
fermented unskimmed camel, cow, and sheep milk quenches thirst for hours, just
as does the kefir of the Tartars from cow's milk. The airan,
after being condensed by boiling, and dried hard as stone into little balls in
the sun, is made into kurt, kurut, which can be kept
for months and is the only means of making bitter salt-water drinkable.
According to Marco Polo it formed the provision of the Mongol armies, and if
the horsemen could not quench his thirst in any other way, he opened one of his
horse's veins and drank the blood. From kumiz and also from
millet a strong spirit (Kirghiz boza) is distilled, which produces
dead-drunkenness followed by a pleasant Nirvana-sensation.
A comparison
of Rubruquis’ account with that of Radloff shows that the
dairying among the Altaians has remained the same from the earliest times. A
late acquisition from China, and only available for the wealthier, is the
"brick-tea", which is also a currency, and a substitute for money.
Little meat is
eaten, notwithstanding the abundance of the herds; it is only customary on
festive occasions or as a consequence of a visit of special honour. In order
not to lessen the stock of cattle, the people content themselves with the
cattle that are sick beyond recovery, or dead and even decaying. The meat is
eaten boiled, and the broth drunk afterwards. Only the Volga-Kalmucks and the
Kara-Kirghiz, who are very rich in flocks, live principally on sheep and horse
meat. That the Huns and Tartars ate raw meat softened by being carried under
the saddle, is a mistake of the chroniclers. At the present time the mounted
nomads are accustomed to put thin strips of salted raw meat on their horses’
sores, before saddling them, to bring about a speedy healing. But this meat,
impregnated with the sweat of the horse and reeking intolerably, is absolutely
uneatable.
From the earliest
times, on account of the enormous abundance of game, hunting has been eagerly
practised for the sake of food and skins, or as sport, either with trap and
snare, or on horseback with falcon and eagle. From Persia came the long-haired
greyhound in addition. Fishing cannot be pursued by long-wandering nomads, and
they make no use even of the best-stocked rivers. But by the lakes and the
rivers which do not dry up, fishing is an important source of food among
short-wandering nomads.
For grain the
seeds of wild-growing cereals are gathered; here and there millet is grown
without difficulty, even on poor soil. A bag of millet-meal suffices the
horseman for days; a handful of it with a drink of water appeases him well
enough. Thus bread is a luxury for the nomad herdsman, and the necessary grain
can only be procured in barter for the products of cattle-rearing and
house-industry. But the Kirghiz of Ferghana in their short but high wanderings on
the Pamir and Alai high above the last agricultural settlements, which only
extend to 4600 feet, carry on an extensive agriculture (summer-wheat, millet,
barley) by means of slaves and laborers at a height of 8500 feet, while they
themselves climb with their herds to a height of 15,800 feet, and partly winter
in the valleys which are free from snow in winter. The nomads eat vegetables
seldom, as only carrots and onions grow in the steppes. The half-settled
agricultural half-nomads of today can be left out of consideration. According
to Plano Carpini the Mongols had neither bread nor vegetables nor
leguminous food, nor anything else except meat, of which they ate so little
that other peoples could scarcely have lived on it. However, in summer they
consumed an enormous quantity of milk, and that failing in winter, one or two
bowls of thin millet boiled in water in the morning, and nothing more except a
little meat in the evening.
We see that from
the earliest times the Altaian nomad has lived by animal-rearing, and in a
subsidiary degree by hunting, and fishing, and here and there by a very scanty
agriculture. As among some hordes, especially the old Magyars, fishing and
hunting are made much of, many believe that they were originally a hunting and
fishing folk, and took to cattle-rearing later. This is an impossibility. The
Magyars, just as were the others, were pure nomads even during winter,
otherwise their herds would have perished. Hunting and fishing they pursued
only as stop-gaps when milk failed. A fishing and hunting people cannot so
easily become mounted nomads, and least of all organised in such a terribly
warlike way as were the Magyars.
The innate
voracity of the Turko-Tartars is the consequence of the climate. The
Bedouin in the latitude of 20º to 32º, at a mean temperature of 86º F, can
easily be more abstinent and moderate with his single meal a day (meat, dates,
truffles) than the Altaian in the freezing cold, between the latitudes of 38º
and 58º, with his three copious meals. The variable climate and its
consequences—hunger in winter, superfluity in summer—have so hardened the
Altaian that he can without difficulty hold out for days without water, and for
weeks (in a known case forty-two days) in a snowstorm without any food; but he
can also consume a six-months’ old whether at one sitting, and is ready to
repeat the dose straight off!
Originally the
Altaian clothed himself in skins, leather, and felt, and not till later in
vegetable-stuffs acquired by barter, tribute, or plunder. Today the outer-coat
of the Kazak-Kirghiz is still made of the shining skin of a foal with the tail
left on for ornament. The Tsaidan-Mongols wear next their bare skin a felt
gown, with the addition of a skin in winter only, and leather breeches. All
Central Asiatics wear the high spherical sheep-skin cap (also used as
a pillow), the tshapan (similar to a dressing-gown and
consisting of fur or felt in winter), leather boots, or felt stockings bound
round with rags. Among many tribes the hair of the men is worn long or shaved
off entirely (Herodotus tells of a snub-nosed, shaven-headed people in the
lower Ural), and the Magyars, Cumans, and others were shorn bare, but for two
pigtails.
The wife occupies
a very dependent position. On her shoulders falls the entire work of the
household, the very manifold needs of which are to be satisfied almost entirely
by home industry. She must take down the tent, pack it up, load it on camels,
and pitch it; she must prepare leather, felt, leather-bottles, cords,
waterproof material, and colours from various plants; she must spin and weave
wool and hair; she must make clothes, collect camel- and cattle-dung, knead it
with dust into tough paste, and form and dry it into cakes; she must saddle and
bridle horses and camels, milk the sheep, prepare kumiz, kurut, and airan,
and graze the herds of sheep in the night—for the husband does this only by
day, and in addition only milks the mares; his remaining occupation is almost
entirely war and plundering. To share the domestic work would be for an Altaian pater-familias an
unheard-of humiliation.
Originally the
choice of a wife was as unrestricted among all the Altaians as among the
Mongols, who, according to Plano Carpini and Marco Polo, might marry
any relative and non-relative except their own mothers and daughters, and
sisters by their own mothers. But today several nomad peoples are strictly
exogamic. The bride was chosen by the father, when still in her childhood; her
price (kalym) was twenty-seven to a hundred mares, and her dowry had
roughly the same value. Polygamy was consequently only possible among tribes
rich in herds, but it was a necessity, as one wife alone could not accomplish
the many duties. Virgin purity and conjugal fidelity are among the Turko-Tartars,
and especially among the Kirghiz, somewhat rare virtues; on the other hand, Marco
Polo agrees with Radloff in praising the absolute fidelity of the
Mongol women.
The upbringing of
the children entails the extreme of hardening. During its first six weeks the
new-born child is bathed daily, summer and winter alike, in the open air; thenceforward
the nomad never washes, his whole life long. The Kalmuck in particular is
absolutely shy of water. Almost to puberty the children go naked summer and
winter; only on the march do they wear a light khalat and
fur-cap. They are suckled at the breast to their fifth year. At three or four
they already sit free with their mother on horseback, and a six-year-old girl
rides like a sportsman. The education of the boys is limited to riding; at the
most falconry in addition. On the other hand, the girls are put to most
exhausting work from their tenderest years, and the value of a bride is decided
by the work she can discharge. Among nearly all Altaian peoples the son thinks
little of his mother, but towards his father he is submissive.
Hereditary right is
purely agnatic. As soon as the married son is able to look after himself, he is
no longer under the authority of his father, and if he likes he can demand as
inheritance a part of the herds adequate to establishing a separate household.
Then however he is entirely settled with, and he cannot inherit further on the
death of his father when there are younger sons—his brothers—still unportioned.
If impoverished the father has the right to take back from his apportioned sons
every fifth animal from the herds (Kalmucks). The daughters are never entitled
to inherit, and on marrying receive merely a suitable dowry from their
brothers, who then receive the kalym. If only daughters survive,
the inheritance goes to the father's brothers or cousins, who in that case receive
the kalym as well.
Speedy as the
Altaian is on horseback, on foot he is helpless and unwieldy; and so the dance
is unknown to him. All games full of dash and excitement are played on
horseback. His hospitality is marvellous; for weeks at a time he treats the new
arrival to the best he has, even when it is the despised and hated Shtitish Persian.
He possesses many sagas and songs—mostly in the minor key, and monotonous as
the steppes—which are accompanied on a two-stringed guitar. Tenor and
mezzo-soprano predominate, and the gait of the horse and the stride of the
camel mark the rhythm.
The surplus of the
female house-industry and of the herds is, as a rule, exchanged in barter for
weapons and armours, metal and wooden articles, clothing material, brick-tea,
and grain. Instead of our gold and silver coinage they have a sheep coinage, in
which all valuations are made. Of course they were acquainted with foreign
coins from the earliest times, and obtained countless millions of pounds from
tribute, plunder, and ransom of prisoners, and they used coins, now and then,
in external trading, but among themselves they still barter, and conclude all
their business in sheep, cattle, horses, and camels. Rubruquis says
of the Mongols in 1353: “We found nothing purchasable for gold and silver, only
for fabrics, of which we had none. When our servant showed them a Hyperpyron (Byzantine
gold coin), they rubbed it with their fingers and smelt it to see if it were
copper”. They have no hand-workers except a few smiths.
The Altaian, and
especially the Turko-Tartar barbarian, considered only the advantage of
the moment; the unlimited plundering was hostile to any transit-trade. But when
and so long as a strong hand controlled the universal plundering spirit, a
caravan trade between north and south, and especially between east and west was
possible, and, with high duties, formed a considerable source of income for the
Central-Asiatic despots.
RELIGION . SHAMANISM
The religious
conceptions of a group of primitive people inhabiting such an enormous district
were of course never uniform. Today the greatest part of the Altaians is
Buddhist, or Islamic, and only a few Siberian Turkish tribes remain true to the
old-Altaian Shamanism.
The characteristic
feature of Shamanism is the belief in the close union of the living with their
long dead ancestors; thus it is an uninterrupted ancestor worship. This faculty
however is possessed only by a few families, those of the Shamans , who pass on
their power from father to son, or sometimes daughter—with the visible symbol
of the Shaman drum by means of which he can call up the spirits through the
power of his ancestors, and compel them to active assistance, and can separate
his own soul from his body and send it into the kingdoms of light and of
darkness. He prepares the sacrifice, conjures up the spirits, leads prayers of
petition and thanksgiving, and in short is doctor, soothsayer, and weather
prophet. In consequence he is held in high regard, but is less loved than
feared, as his ceremonies are uncanny, and he himself dangerous if evil
inclined. The chosen of his ancestors attains to his Shaman power not by
instruction but by sudden inspiration; he falls into a frenzy, utters
inarticulate cries, rolls his eyes, turns himself round in a circle as if
possessed, until, covered with perspiration, he wallows on the ground in
epileptic convulsions; his body becomes insensible to impressions; according to
accounts he swallows automatically, and without subsequent injury, red-hot
iron, knives, and needles, and brings them up again dry. These passions get
stronger and stronger, till the individual seizes the Shaman drum and begins “shamaneering”.
Not before this does his nature compose itself, the power of his ancestors has
passed into him, and he must thenceforth “shamaneer”. He is moreover dressed in
a fantastic garb hung with rattling iron trinkets. The Shaman drum is a wooden
hoop with a skin, painted with gay figures, stretched over both sides, and all
kinds of clattering bells and little sticks of iron upon it. In “shamaneering”
the drum is vigorously struck with one drum-stick, and the ancestors thus
invoked interrogated about the cause of the evil which is to be banished, and
the sacrifice which is to be made to the divinity in order to avert it. The
beast of sacrifice is then slaughtered and eaten, the skin together with all
the bones is set aside as the sacrificial offering. Then follows the
conjuration-in-chief, with the most frantic hocus-pocus, by means of which the
Shaman strives to penetrate with his soul into the highest possible region of
heaven in order to undertake an interrogation of the god of heaven himself.
From the great
confusion of local creeds some such Shaman system as the following can be
constructed; though the people themselves have only very vague conceptions of
it.
The universe
consists of a number of layers separated one from another by a certain
something. The seventeen upper layers form the kingdom of light, seven or nine
the underworld of darkness. In between lies the surface of man's earth,
constantly influenced by both powers. The good divinities and spirits of heaven
protect men, but the bad endeavour to destroy them. Originally there was only
water and neither earth nor heaven nor sun nor moon. Then Tengere Kaira Khan (the
kind heaven) created first a being like himself, Kishi, man. Both
soared in bliss over the water, but Kishi wished to exalt himself
above the creator, and losing through his transgression the power to fly, fell
headlong into the bottomless water. In his mercy Kaira Khan caused a
star to rise out of the flood, upon which the drowning Kishi could
sit; but as he could no longer fly Kaira Khan caused him to dive deep
down and bring up earth, which he strewed upon the surface of the water.
But Kishi kept a piece of it in his mouth in order to create a
special country out of it for himself. This swelled in his mouth and would have
suffocated him had he not spat it out so that morasses formed on Kaira Khan’s
hitherto smooth earth. In consequence Kaira Khan named Kishi Erlik,
banished him from the kingdom of light, and caused a nine-branched tree to grow
out of the earth, and under each branch created a man as first father of each
of the nine peoples of the present time.
In vain Erlik besought Kaira Khan
to entrust to him the nine fair and good men; but he found out how to pervert
them to evil. Angered thereat Kaira Khan left foolish man to himself,
and condemned Erlik to the third layer of darkness. But for himself
he created the seventeen layers of heaven and set up his dwelling in the
highest. As the protector and teacher of the now deserted race of man he left
behind Mai-Tärä (the Sublime). Erlik too with the
permission of the Kaira Khan built himself a heaven and peopled it
with his own subjects, the bad spirits, men corrupted by him. And behold, they
lived more comfortably that the sons of the earth created by Kaira Khan.
And so Kaira Khan caused Erlik’s heaven to be shattered
into small pieces, which falling on the earth formed huge mountains and gorges.
But Erlik was
doomed until the end of the world to everlasting darkness. And now from the
seventeenth layer of heaven Kaira Khan controls the destiny of
the universe. By emanation from him the three highest divinities came into
being : Bai Ulgon (the Great) in the sixteenth, Kysagan Tengere (the
Mighty) in the ninth, and Mergen Tengere (the All-wise)
in the seventh layer of heaven, where Mother Sun dwells also. In the sixth is
enthroned Father Moon in the fifth Kudai Yayutshi (the
highest Creator). Ulgon’s two sons Yayik and Mai-Tara,
the protecting patrons of mankind, dwell in the third on the milk-white sea
Sut-ak-kol, the source of all life; near it is the mountain Suro,
the dwelling of the seven Kudau with their subjects the Yayutshi, the
guardian angels of mankind. Here is also the paradise of the blessed and
righteous ancestors of living men, who mediate between the divinities of heaven
and their own descendants, and can help them in their need. The earth is
personified in a community of spirits (Yer-su) beneficent to man, the
seventeen high Khans (princes) of the seventeen spring districts, whose abodes
lie on the seventeen snow peaks of the highest mountains, by the sources of the
seventeen streams which water the land.
In the seven
layers of the dark underworld prevails the dismal light of the underworld sun
peculiar to them. This is the dwelling of all the evil spirits who waylay men
at every turn: misshapen goblins, witches, Kormos, and others ruled
by Erlik-Khan the dreadful prince on the black throne. Still deeper lies
the horrible hell, Kasyrgan, where the sinners and criminals of
mankind suffer just punishment.
All evil comes
from Erlik, cattle-disease, poverty, illness, and death. Thus there is no
more important duty for man than to hold him steadfastly in honour, to call him
“father Erlik”, and to appease him with rich sacrifices. If a man is to be
born, Ulgon, at the request of the former's ancestors, orders his
son Yayik to give a Yayutshi charge of the birth, with the
life-force from the milk-white sea. This Yayutshi then watches over
the newly-born during the whole of his life on earth. But at the same
time Erlik sends forth a Kormos to prevent the birth
or at least to hamper it, and to injure and misguide the newly-born his whole
life long. And if Erlik is successful in annihilating the life-forces
of a man, Kormos drags the soul before Erlik’s judgment-seat.
If the man was more good than bad, Erlik has no power over him, Kormos stands
aside, and the Yayutshi brings the soul up to paradise. But the soul
of the wicked is abandoned by its Yayutshi, dragged by its Kormos to
hell in the deepest layer of the underworld, and flung into a gigantic caldron
of scalding tar. The worst sinners remain for ever beneath the surface of the
tar, the rest rise gradually above the bubbling tar until at last the crown of
the head with the pigtail comes to view. So even the sinner's good works are
not in vain. The blessed in heaven reflect on the kindnesses once done by him,
and they and his ancestors send his former Yayutshi to hell, who
grasps him by the pigtail, pulls him out of the tar, and bears the soul up to
heaven. For this reason the Kalmucks let their pigtails grow, as did many of
the nomad peoples of history.
However, there is
no absolute justice. The gods of light, like the spirits of darkness, allow
themselves to be won over by sacrificial viands, and, if rich offerings are
forthcoming, they willingly wink at transgression; they are envious of man’s
wealth and demand gifts from all, and so it is advisable to stand well with
both powers, and that can only be done through the medium of the Shamans. So
long as Erlik is banished in the darkness, a uniform ordering of the
universe exists till the last day when everything created comes to an end, and
the world ceases to be.
With Shamanism
fire-worship was closely associated. Fire purifies everything, wards off evil,
and makes every enchantment ineffective. Hence the sick man, and the strange
arrival, and everything which he brings with him must pass between two fires.
Probably fire-worship was originally common to all the Altaians, and the
Magyars also of the ninth century were described by the Arabian geographer as
fire-worshippers.
In consequence of
the healthy climate, the milk diet, and the Spartan hardening, the Altaian
enjoys excellent health, hence the saying “Healthy as a Kirghiz”. There are not
a few old men of eighty, and some of a hundred years. Infectious diseases are
almost unknown, chiefly because the constant smoke in the tent acts as a
disinfectant, though combined with the ghastly filthiness it promotes the very
frequent eye-complaints, itch, and eruptions of the skin. In consequence of the
constant wandering on camel-back, and through the Shaman hocus-pocus, illness
and death at home are vexatious, and sudden death on the field of battle is
preferred. In order not to be forgotten, the Turko-Tartar—in contrast to
the Mongol—likes to be buried in a conspicuous place, and, as such places do
not exist on the steppes, after a year there is heaped over the buried corpse
an artificial mound which, according to the wealth of the dead man, rises to a
hill-like tumulus. At the same time an ostentatious funeral festival lasting
seven days is held, with races, prize combats, and other games on horseback.
Hundreds of horses, camels, and sheep are then consumed.
WEAPONS . PREDATORY LIFE
The nomad loves
his horses and weapons as himself. The principal weapon is the lance, and in
European warfare the Uhlans and Cossacks survive from the armies of the
steppes. The nomad-peoples who invaded Europe were all wonderfully sure bowmen.
The value of the bow lies in the treacherous noiselessness of the arrow, which
is the best weapon for hunting and ambush, and is therefore still in use today
together with the rifle. In addition there have always been long-handled iron
hatchets and pick-shaped battle-axes for striking and hurling, and the bent
sabre.
The warrior’s body
was often protected by a shirt of Armour made of small polished steel plates,
or by a harness of ox-leather plates, the head by a helmet; all mostly Persian
or Caucasian work.
The hard-restless
life of the mounted nomad is easily disturbed by pressure from his like, by the
death of his cattle from hunger and disease, and by the prospect of plunder,
which makes him a professional robber. Of this the Turkoman was long a type.
The leading features in the life of a Turkoman are the alaman (predatory
expedition) or the tchapao (the surprise). The invitation to
any enterprise likely to be attended with profit finds him ever ready to arm
himself and to spring to his saddle. The design itself is always kept a
profound secret even from the nearest relative; and as soon as the serdar (chief
elect) has had bestowed upon him by some mollah or other
the fatiha (benediction), every man betakes himself, at the
commencement of the evening, by different ways, to a certain place indicated
before as the rendezvous. The attack is always made either at midnight, when an
inhabited settlement, or at sunrise, when a caravan or any hostile troop is its
object. This attack of the Turkomans, like that of the Huns and Tartars, is
rather to be styled a surprise. They separate themselves into several
divisions, and make two, hardly ever three, assaults upon their unsuspecting
prey; for, according to a Turkoman proverb, “Try twice, turn back the third
time”. The party assailed must possess great resolution and firmness to be able
to withstand a surprise of this nature; the Persians seldom do so. Very often a
Turkoman will not hesitate to attack five or even more Persians, and will
succeed in his enterprise. Often the Persians, struck with a panic, throw away
their arms, demand the cords, and bind each other mutually; the Turkomans have
no occasion to dismount except for the purpose of fastening the last of them.
He who resists is cut down; the coward who surrenders has his hands bound, and
the horseman either takes him up on his saddle (in which case his feet are
bound under the horse’s belly), or drives him before him : whenever from any
cause this is not possible, the wretched man is attached to the tail of the
animal
and has for hours and hours even for days and days to follow the robber to his
desert home. Each captive is then ill-treated until his captor learns from him
how high a ransom can be extracted from his kinsmen. But ransoming was a long
way from meaning salvation itself, for on the journey home the ransomed were
not seldom captured again and once more enslaved. Poor captives were sold at
the usual price in the slave-markets at Bokhara, Khiva, etc.; for
example, a woman of fifty for ten ducats. Those that could not be disposed of
and were retained as herdsmen, had the sinews of their heels cut, to hinder
them from flight. Until their overthrow by Skobelev in 1881 more than
15,000 Tekke-Turkomans contrived such raids day and night; about a million
people in Persia alone were carried off in the last century, and made on the
average certainly not less than 10 per head.
In the ninth
century the Magyars and their nomadic predecessors in South Russia, according
to Ibn Rusta’s Arabian source, behaved exactly as the Turkomans in
Persia; they provided for the slave-markets on the Pontus so many Slav captives
that the name slave finally became the designation in the West of the worst
servitude.
With man-stealing
was associated cattle-stealing (baranta), which finally made any attempt
at cattle-rearing impossible for the systematically plundered victim, and drove
him to vegetarianism without milk nourishment. And what a vegetarianism, when
agriculture had to suffer from the ever-recurring raids, and from bad harvests!
And where the predatory herdsman settled for the winter in the midst of an
agricultural population and in his own interests allowed them a bare existence
as his serfs, there came about a remarkable connection of two strata of people
different in race and, for a time, in speech also.
A typical land in
this respect is Ferghana, the former Khanate of Khokand, on the southern
border of the Great Kirghiz horde. The indigenous inhabitants of this country,
the entirely vegetarian Tadjiks and Sarts, from immemorial times
passed from the hands of one nomad people to another in the most frightful
servitude. In the sweat of their brows they dug canals for irrigation,
cultivated fields, and put into practice a hundred arts, only to pay the lion's
share to their oppressors who, in the full consciousness of their boundless
power, indulged the most bestial appetites. But the majority of the dominant
horde could not turn from their innate and uncontrollable impulse to wander; in
the spring they were drawn irresistibly to the free air of the high-lying
steppes, and only a part of them returned to winter among the enslaved peasantry.
This hopeless
state of affairs continued to the Russian conquest in 1876, for the directly
adjoining deserts always poured forth wild hordes afresh, who nipped in the bud
any humaner intercourse of herdsmen and peasants. For rapine and
slavery were inevitable wherever the nomads of the vast steppes and deserts
made their abode in the immediate neighbourhood of more civilized lands. What
their own niggardly soil denied them, they took by force from the fruitful
lands of their neighbours. And because the plundered husbandman could not
pursue the fleet mounted nomad into the trackless desert, he remained
unprotected.
The fertile
districts on the edge of the Sahara and the Arabian desert were also in this
frightful position, and Iran felt this calamity all the harder, because the
adjoining deserts of Turan are the most extensive and terrible, and
their inhabitants the wildest of all the nomads of the world. No better fared
the peoples inhabiting East Europe, on the western boundaries of the
steppe-zone.
As early as the
fourth century B. C. Ephorus stated that the customs, according to the
individual peoples, of the Scythians and the Sarmatians (both names covered the
most medley conglomerations of nomads and peasants) were very dissimilar. Some
even ate human beings (as the Massagetae ate their sick or aged parents),
others abstained from all animals. A thousand years later Pseudo-Caesarius of
Nazianzus tells of a double people, that of the Sklavenes (Slavs)
and Phisonites on the lower Danube, of whom the Sklavenes abstained
from meat eating. And Constantine Porphyrogenitus in the year 952 stated that
the Russians (North Germanic Varangians, who coming from Scandinavia held sway
over the Slavs of Russia) bought horses, cattle, and sheep from their terrible nomadic
neighbours the Patzinaks, because they had none of these animals
themselves (i.e. in the Slav lands which they dominated). In
certain districts of East Europe therefore vegetarianism was permanent among
the peasant folk, who for more than two thousand years had been visited by the
Altaians with rapine and murder; this can be proved from original sources to
have been the case from the fourth century BC to the tenth century AD. that is,
for 1400 years! It is exactly the same state of things as in Ferghana in modern
times.
As long as a nomad
horde finds sufficient room in the steppe it does not think of emigration, and
always returns home from its raids richly laden with the plunder. But if the
steppe-zone is thrown into a ferment by struggles for the winter pastures or by
other causes, the relatively weakest horde gets pushed out of the steppe, and
must conquer a new home outside the zone. For it is only weak against the
remaining nomad hordes, but against any other State upon which it falls it is
irresistible. All the nomads of history who broke into Europe, the Scythians,
Sarmatians, Huns, Bulgarians, Avars, Magyars, Cumans, were the weakest in
the steppes and had to take to flight, whence they became assailants of the
world, before whom the strongest States tottered. With an energetic Khan at
their head, who organised them on military lines, such a horde transformed
itself into an incomparable army, compelled by the instinct of
self-preservation to hold fast together in the midst of the hostile population
which they subjugated; for however superfluous a central government may be in
the steppe, it is of vital importance to a conquering nomad horde outside it.
Consequently, while that part of the people which remained in the steppe was
split up into loose clan associations, the other part, which emigrated,
possessed itself of immense territories, exterminated the greater part of
entire nations and enslaved the rest, scattered them as far as they pleased,
and founded a despotically governed State with a ridiculously small band of
horsemen.
The high figures
in the chronicles are fictions exaggerated by terror and imagination, seeing
that large troops of horsemen, who recklessly destroyed everything around them,
would not have found in a narrow space even the necessary pasture for their
many horses. Each Mongol under Chinghiz Khan, for example, was
obliged to take with him 18 horses and mares, so as always to have a fresh
steed and sufficient mare’s milk and horse’s blood for food and drink. Two
corps under the command of Sabutai and Chebe sufficed this
great conqueror for the overthrow of West Asia. In four years they devastated
and in great part depopulated Khorasan, North Persia, Azerbaidjan,
Georgia, Armenia, Caucasia, the Crimea, and the Volga territories, took
hundreds of towns, and utterly defeated in bloody engagements the large armies
of the Georgians, Lesghians, Circassians, and Cumans, and the united
forces of the Russian princes. But they spared themselves as much as possible,
by driving those of the subjugated people who were capable of bearing arms into
the fight before them (as the Huns and Avars did previously), and
cutting them down at once when they hesitated.
But what the
Altaian armies lacked in numbers was made up for by their skill in surprises,
their fury, their cunning, mobility, and elusiveness, and the panic which
preceded them and froze the blood of all peoples. On their marvellously fleet
horses they could traverse immense distances, and their scouts provided them
with accurate local information as to the remotest lands and their weakness.
Add to this the enormous advantage that among them even the most insignificant
news spread like wildfire from aul to aul by means of voluntary couriers
surpassing any intelligence department, however well organised. The tactics of
the Mongols are described by Marco Polo in agreement with Piano Carpini and
all the other writers as follows: “They never let themselves come to close
quarters, but keep perpetually riding round and shooting into the enemy. And as
they do not count it any shame to run away in battle, they will sometimes
pretend to do so, and in running away they turn in the saddle and shoot hard
and strong at the foe, and in this way make great havoc. Their horses are
trained so perfectly that they will double hither and thither, just like a dog,
in a way that is quite astonishing. Thus they fight to as good purpose in
running away as if they stood and faced the enemy, because of the vast volleys
of arrows that they shoot in this way, turning round upon their pursuers, who
are fancying that they have won the battle. But when the Tartars see that they
have killed and wounded a good many horses and men, they wheel round bodily and
return to the charge in perfect order and with loud cries; and in a very short
time the enemy are routed. In truth they are stout and valiant soldiers and
inured to war. And you perceive that it is just when the enemy sees them run,
and imagines that he has gained the battle, that he has in reality lost it; for
the Tartars wheel round in a moment when they judge the right time has come.
And after this fashion they have won many a fight”. The chronicler, Peter
of Zittau, in the year 1315, described the tactics of the Magyars in
exactly the same way.
When a vigorous
conqueror like Attila or Chinghiz arose among the mounted nomads and
combined several hordes for a cyclonic advance, they swept all before them on
the march, like a veritable avalanche of peoples. The news of the onward
rolling flood scared the bravest people, and compelled them to fly from their
homes; thus their neighbours, too, were set in tumultuous motion, and so it
went on until some more powerful State took defensive measures and stemmed the
tide of peoples. Now the fugitives had to face the assailant. A battle of
nations was fought, the flower of famous peoples strewed the field, and
powerful nations were wiped out. The deserted or devastated territories were
occupied by peoples hitherto often quite unknown, or settled by nations
forcibly brought there by the conqueror; States, generally without duration and
kept together only by the one powerful hand, were founded. The giant State,
having no cohesion from within, fell to pieces at the death of the conqueror or
shortly after; but the sediment of peoples, together with a stratum of their
nomad oppressors which remained from the flood, could not be pushed back again,
and immense areas of a continent received once again an entirely new
ethnography the work of one single furious conqueror.
Oftener and longer
than in Europe successive Altaian empires held together in Asia, where the
original population had long become worn out by eternal servitude and the
central zone of the steppes supplied a near and secure base for plundering
hordes. That some of these Asiatic empires attained to a high degree of
prosperity is not due to the conquerors, who indeed quickly demongolised themselves
by marriage with aliens, but was the consequence of the geographical position,
the productivity of the soil, and the resigned tractableness and adaptability
of the subjugated who, in spite of all the splendour of their masters, were
forced to languish in helpless servitude. Out of Central Asia from time
immemorial one nomad horde after another broke into the steppes of South Russia
and of Hungary, and after exterminating or pushing out their predecessors and
occupying their territories, used this new base to harry and enslave the
surrounding peoples far and wide, forcibly transforming their whole being, as
in Ferghana.
But the bestial
fury of the nomads not only laid bare the country, recklessly depopulated
enormous tracts, dragged off entire peoples and forcibly transplanted and
enslaved them, but where their sway was of any duration they brought their
subjects down to the level of brutes, and extirpated every trace of nobler
feeling from their souls. Central Asia of today, as Vambery states
from personal observation, is a sink of all vices. And Franz von Schwarz draws
the following cheerless picture of the Turkestan Sarts, among whom he
lived for fifteen years: With respect to character they are sunk as low as man
possibly can be. But this is not at all to be wondered at, as for thousands of
years they were oppressed and enslaved by all possible peoples, against whom
they could only maintain themselves by servility, cunning, and deceit.
The Sart is cowardly, fawning, cringing, reticent, suspicious,
deceitful, revengeful, cruel, and boastful. At the same time he shows in his
appearance and manner a dignity and bearing that would compel the uninitiated
to regard him as the ideal of a man of honour. In the former native States, as
in Bokhara and Khiva today, the entire system of government and administration
was based exclusively on lying, deceit, and bribery, and it was quite
impossible for a poor man to get justice
The opposite of
the Sart is his oppressor the Kirghiz, who is shy, morose, and
violent, but also honourable, upright, good-hearted, and brave. The terrible
slave-hunting Turkoman is distinguished from all other Central Asiatics by
his bold and piercing glance and proud bearing. In wild bravery no other race
on earth can match itself with him, and as a horseman he is unsurpassed. He has
an unruly disposition and recognises no authority, but his word can be
absolutely relied upon.
What a tragic fate
for an enslaved people. Although its lowest degradation is already behind it,
how long yet will it be the object of universal and not unnatural contempt,
while its former oppressor, void of all humane feeling, a professional murderer
and cattle-thief, remains as a hero and ideal super-man?
So long as the
dominant nomad horde remains true to its wandering life, it lives in the midst
of the subjugated only in winter, and proceeds in spring to the summer
pastures. But it is wise enough to leave behind overseers and guards, to
prevent revolts. The individual nomad has no need to keep many slaves; besides,
he would have no occupation and no food for them, and so an entire horde
enslaves entire peoples, who must provide food for themselves. In so far as he
does not winter directly among them, the nomad only comes to plunder them
regularly, leaving them nothing but what is absolutely indispensable.
The peasantry had
to supply the nomads and their herds who wintered among them with all that was
demanded. For this purpose they stored up grain and fodder during the summer,
for in Central and East Europe the snow falls too deep for the herds to be left
to scrape out fodder alone. During the winter the wives and daughters of the
enslaved became a prey to the lusts of the yellow-skins, by whom they were
incessantly violated, and thus every conjugal and family tie and as a further
consequence the entire social organization was seriously loosened. The ancient
Indo- European patriarchal principle, which has exclusively prevailed among the
Altaians also from the earliest times, languished among the enslaved just
because of the violation and loosening of the conjugal bond, which often
continued for hundreds of years.
The matriarchal
principle came into prominence, for the Altaian adulterer repudiated bastards,
and still more did the husband where there was one, so the children followed
the mother. Where therefore matriarchal phenomena occur among Indo-Europeans,
usually among the lower strata of population, they are not survivals of
pre-patriarchal times, but probably arose later from the corruption of married
life by systematic adultery. Thus the subjugated Indo-Europeans became here
more, there less mongolised by the mixture of races, and in places
the two superimposed races became fused into a uniform mixed people.
Indo-European
usage and law died out, and the savage wilfulness of the Altaians had exclusive
sway. Revolutions among the people driven to despair followed, but they were
quelled in blood, and the oppression exercised still more heavily. Even if here
and there the yoke was successfully shaken off, the emancipated, long paralysed
and robbed of all capability of self-organization, were unable to remain
independent. Commonly they fell into anarchy and then voluntarily gave
themselves up to another milder-seeming servitude, or became once more the prey
of an if possible rougher conqueror.
In consequence of
the everlasting man-hunting and especially the carrying off of women in foreign
civilised districts there ensued a strong mixing of blood, and the Altaian
race-characteristics grew fainter, especially to the south and west. The Greeks
by the time of Alexander the Great were no longer struck by the Mongol type
already much obliterated of the nomads pasturing in the district between the
Oxus and the Jaxartes. This led to the supposition that these nomads had
belonged to the Indo-European race and had originally been settled peasants,
and that they had been compelled to limit themselves to animal rearing and to
become nomads only after the conversion of their fields to deserts through the
evaporation of the water-basins. This supposition is false, as we have seen
before
The steppes and
deserts of Central Asia are an impassable barrier for the South Asiatics,
the Aryans, but not for the North Asiatic, the Altaian; for him they are an
open country providing him with the indispensable winter pastures. On the other
hand, for the South Asiatic Aryan these deserts are an object of terror, and
besides he is not impelled towards them, as he has winter pastures near at
hand. It is this difference in the distance of summer and winter pastures that
makes the North Asiatic Altaian an ever-wandering herdsman, and the grazing
part of the Indo-European race cattle-rearers settled in limited
districts. Thus, while the native Iranian must halt before the trackless region
of steppes and deserts and cannot follow the well-mounted robber nomad thither,
Iran itself is the object of greatest longing to the nomadic Altaian. Here he can
plunder and enslave to his heart's delight, and if he succeeds in maintaining
himself for a considerable time among the Aryans, he learns the language of the
subjugated people, and by mingling with them loses his Mongol characteristics
more and more. If the Iranian is now fortunate enough to shake off the yoke,
the dispossessed iranised Altaian intruder inflicts himself upon
other lands. So it was with the Scythians.
Leaving their
families behind in the South Russian steppes, the Scythians invaded Media c. BC 630
and advanced into Mesopotamia and Syria as far as Egypt. In Media they took
Median wives and learned the Median language. After being driven out by
Cyaxares, on their return some twenty-eight years later, they met with a new
generation, the offspring of the wives and daughters whom they had left behind,
and slaves of an alien race. A thorough mixture of race within a single
generation is hardly conceivable. A hundred and fifty years later Hippocrates
found them still so foreign, so Mongolian, that he could say that they were
“very different from the rest of mankind, and only like themselves, as are also
the Egyptians”. He remarked their yellowish-red complexion, corpulence, smooth
skins, and their consequent eunuch-like appearance all typically Mongol
characteristics. Hippocrates was the most celebrated physician and natural
philosopher of the ancient world. His evidence is unshakable, and cannot be
invalidated by the Aryan speech of the Scythians. Their Mongol type was innate
in them, whereas their Iranian speech was acquired and is no refutation of
Hippocrates' testimony. On the later Greek vases from South Russian excavations
they already appear strongly demongolised and the Altaian is only
suggested by their hair, which is as stiff as a horse’s mane the characteristic
that survives longest among all Ural-Altaian hybrid peoples.
If a nomad army is
obliged to take foreign non-nomadic wives, there occurs at once a dualism,
corresponding to the two sexes, in the language and way of living of each
individual household. The new wives cannot live in the saddle, they do not know
how to take down the tent, load it on the beasts of burden, and set it up
again, and yet they must share the restless life of the herdsman. Consequently,
where the ground admits of it, as in South Russia, the tent is put on wheels
and drawn by animals.
Thus the Scythian
women were hamaxobiotic (wagon inhabiting), the men however remained
true to their horse-riding life and taught their boys too, as soon as they
could keep themselves in the saddle. But the dualism in language could not
maintain itself; the children held to the language of the mother, the more
easily because even the fathers understood Medish, and so the Altaian
Scythian people, with their language finally iranised, became Iranian. But
their mode of life remained unchanged : the consumption of horse-flesh, soured
horse's milk (kumiz) and cheese of the same, the hemp vapour bath for men (the
women bathed differently), singeing of the fleshy parts of the body as a cure
for rheumatism, poisoning of the arrow-tips, wholesale human offerings, and
slaughter of favourite wives at the burials of princes, the placing on
horseback of the stuffed bodies of murdered warriors round the grave, etc., all
such customs as are found so well defined among the Mongols of the Middle Ages
The modern Tartars
of the Crimea, whose classical beauty sometimes rivals that of the Greeks and
Romans, underwent, in the same land, the same change to the Aryan type.
The same is the
case with the Magyars whose mounted nomadic mode of life and fury, and
consequently their origin, was Turkish, but their language was a mixture of
Ugrian and Turkish on an Ugrian basis. Evidently a Magyar army, Turkish in
blood, formerly advanced far to the north where it subdued an Ugrian people and
took Ugrian wives; the children then blended the Ugrian speech of their mothers
with the Turkish speech of their fathers. But they must also once have
dominated Indo-European peoples and mixed themselves very strongly with them,
for Gardezi’s original source from the middle of the ninth century describes
them as “handsome, stately men”. At that time they were leading the nomad
existence in the Pontic Steppe the old Scythia whence they engaged in terrible
slave-hunting among the neighbouring Slavs; and as they were notorious
women-hunters, they must have assimilated much Slav, Alan, and Circassian
blood, and thus became “handsome, stately men”. However the change did not end
there. At the end of the ninth century their army, on its return from a
predatory expedition, found their kindred at home totally exterminated by their
deadly enemies, the Patzinaks, a related stock. Consequently the whole
body had again to take foreign wives, and they occupied the steppes of Hungary.
Before this catastrophe the Magyars are said to have mustered 20,000 horsemen,
an oriental exaggeration, for this would assume a nomad people of 200,000
souls. Consequently only a few thousand horsemen could have fled to Hungary.
There they mixed themselves further with the medley race-conglomeration settled
there, which had formed itself centuries before, and assimilated stragglers
from the related Patzinak stock. By this absorption the Altaian type
asserted itself so predominantly that the Frankish writers were never tired of
depicting their ugliness and loathsomeness in the most horrifying colours.
Their fury was so irresistible that in sixty-three years they were able with
impunity to make thirty-two great predatory expeditions as far as the North
Sea, and to France, Spain, Italy, and Byzantium. Thus the modern Magyars are
one of the most varied race-mixtures on the face of the earth, and one of the
two chief Magyar types of today traced to the Arpad era by tomb-findings is
dolichocephalic with a narrow visage. There we have before us Altaian origin,
Ugrian speech, and Indo-European type combined.
Such metamorphoses
are typical for all nomads who, leaving their families at home, attack foreign
peoples and at the same time make war on one another. In the furious tumult in
which the Central Asiatic mounted hordes constantly swarmed, and fought one
another for the spoils, it is to be presumed that nearly all such people, like
the Scythians and Magyars, at least once sustained the loss of their wives and
children. The mounted nomads could, therefore, remain a pure race only where
they constantly opposed their own kin, whereas to the south and west they were
merged so imperceptibly in the Semitic and Indo-European stock, that no
race-boundary is perceivable.
The most
diversified was the destiny of those mounted nomads who became romanised in
the Balkan peninsula (Roumanians or Vlakhs), but, surprising as it
may be outside the steppe region, remain true to this day to their life as
horse and sheep nomads wherever this is still at all possible. During the
summer they grazed on most of the mountains of the Balkan peninsula, and took
up their winter quarters on the sea-coasts among a peasant population speaking
a different language. Thence they gradually spread, unnoticed by the chroniclers,
along all the mountain ranges, over all the Carpathians of Transylvania, North
Hungary, and South Galicia to Moravia; towards the north-west from Montenegro
onwards over Herzegovina, Bosnia, Istria, as far as South Styria; towards the
south over Albania far into Greece. In the entire Balkan peninsula there is
scarcely a span of earth which they have not grazed. And like the peasantry
among which they wintered (and winter) long enough, they became (and become)
after a transitory bilingualism, Greeks, Albanians, Servians, Bulgarians,
Ruthenians, Poles, Slovaks, Chekhs, Slovenes, Croatians, seeing that they
appeared there not as a compact body, but as a mobile nomad stratum among a
strange-tongued and more numerous peasant element, and not till later did they
gradually take to agriculture and themselves become settled. In Istria they are
still bilingual. On the other hand they maintain themselves in Roumania,
East Hungary, Bukovina, Bessarabia for the following reasons: the central
portion of this region, the Transylvanian mountain belt, sustained with its
rich summer pastures such a number of grazing-camps, that the nomads in the
favourable winter quarters of the Roumanian plain were finally able
to absorb the Slav peasantry, already almost wiped out by the everlasting
passage through them of other wild nomad peoples. In Macedonia, too, a
remainder of them still exists. Were they not denationalised, the Roumanians today
would be by far the most numerous but also the most scattered people of South
Europe, not less than twenty million souls.
The Roumanians were
not descendants of Roman colonists of Dacia left behind in East Hungary and
Transylvania. Their nomadic life is a confutation of this, for the Emperor
Trajan (after AD 107) transplanted settled colonists from the
entire Roman Empire. And after the removal and withdrawal of the Roman
colonists (c. AD 271) Dacia, for untold centuries, was the
arena of the wildest international struggles known to history, and these could
not have been outlived by any nomad people remaining there. To be sure, some
express the opinion that the Roumanian nomad herdsmen fled into the
Transylvanian mountains at each new invasion (by the Huns, Bulgarians, Avars,
Magyars, Patzinaks, Cumans successively) and subsequently always returned.
But the nomad can support himself in the mountains only during the summer, and
he must descend to pass the winter. On the other hand, each of these new
invading nomad hordes needed these mountains for summer grazing for their own
herds. Thus the Roumanians could not have escaped, and their alleged game
of hide-and-seek would have been in vain. But south of the Danube also the
origin of the Roumanians must not be sought in Roman times, but much
later, because nomads are never quickly denationalised. For in the summer they
are quite alone on the otherwise uninhabited mountains, having intercourse with
one another in their own language, and only in their winter quarters among the
foreign-speaking peasantry are they compelled in their dealings with them to
resort to the foreign tongue. Thus they remain for centuries bilingual before
they are quite denationalised, and this can be proved from original sources
precisely in the case of the Roumanians (Vlakhs) in the old kingdom
of Servia. Accordingly the romanising of the Roumanians presupposes
a Romance peasant population already existing there for a long time and of
different race, through the influence of which they first became bilingual and
then very gradually, after some centuries, forgot their own language. In what
district could this have taken place? For nomads outside the salt-steppe the
seacoast offers precisely on account of the salt, and the mild winter the most
suitable winter quarters, and, as a matter of fact, from the earliest times
certain shores of the Adriatic, the Ionian, Aegean, and Marmora, were crowded
with Vlakhian catuns, and are partly so at the present time.
Among all these sea-districts, however, only Dalmatia had remained so long
Romanic as to be able entirely to romanise a nomad people. From this
district the expansion of the Roumanians had its beginning, so that
the name Daco-Roumanians is nothing but a fiction.
The Spanish and
Italian nomad shepherds too can have had no other origin. Alans took part
in Radagaisus’ invasion of Italy in 405, and, having advanced to Gaul,
founded in 411 a kingdom in Lusitania which was destroyed by the Visigoths. The
remainder advanced into Africa with the Vandals in 429. Traces of the Alans
remained for a long time in Gaul. Sarmatian and Bulgarian hordes accompanied
Alboin to Italy in 568, and twelve places in northern Italy are still
called Bolgaro, Bolgheri, etc. A horde of Altaian Bulgars fled to
Italy later, and received from the Lombard Grimoald (662-672)
extensive and hitherto barren settlements in the mountains of Abruzzi and their
neighbourhood. In the time of Paulus Diaconus (797) they also spoke
Latin, but their mother tongue was still intact, for only on their winter
pastures in Apulia and Campania, in contact with Latin peasants in whose fields
they encamped, were they compelled to speak Latin. The old Roman sheep-rearing
pursued by slaves has no connection with nomadism.
Therefore neither
the non-Mongol appearance, nor the Semitic, Indo-European, or Finno-Ugrian
language of any historical mounted nomad people can be held as a serious argument
for their Semitic, Indo-European, or Finno-Ugrian origin. Everything speaks for
one single place of origin for the mounted nomads, and that is in the Turanian-Mongol
steppes and deserts. These alone, by their enormous extent, their unparalleled
severity of climate, their uselessness in summer, their salt vegetation
nourishing countless herds, and above all by their indivisible economic
connection with the distant grass-abounding north these alone give rise to a
people with the ineradicable habits of mounted nomads. The Indo-European
vocabulary reveals no trace of a former mounted nomadism; there is no ground
for speaking of Indo-European, Semitic, Finno-Ugrian nomads, but only of nomads
who have remained Altaic or of indo-europeanised, semiticised, ugrianised nomads.
The Scythians became Iranian, the Magyars Ugrian, the Avars and
Bulgarians Slavic, and so on.
The identical
origin of all the mounted nomads of historic and modern times is also
demonstrated by the identity of their entire mode of life, even in its details
and most trivial particulars, their customs, and their habits. One nomad people
is the counterfeit of the other, and after more than two thousand years no
change, no differentiation, no progress is to be observed among them.
Accordingly we can always supplement our not always precise information about
individual historical hordes, and the consequences of their appearance, by
comparisons with the better known hordes. We are best informed about the
Mongols of the thirteenth century, and that by Rogerius Canon
of Varad, Thomas Archdeacon of Spalato, Plano Carpini, Rubruquis,
Marco Polo and others, whose accounts are therefore indispensable for a correct
estimation of all earlier nomadic invaders of Europe.
This is the role
of nomadism in the history of the world: countries too distant from its basis
it could only ravage transitorily, with robbery, murder, fire, and slavery, but
the stamp which it left upon the peoples which it directly dominated or
adjoined remains uneffaceable. The Orient, the cradle and chief nursery of
civilization, it delivered over to barbarism; it completely paralysed the
greater part of Europe, and it transformed and radically corrupted the race,
spirit, and character of countless millions for incalculable ages to come. That
which is called the inferiority of the East European is its work, and had Germany
or France possessed steppes like Hungary, where the nomads could also have
maintained themselves and thence completed their work of destruction, in all
probability the light of West European civilization would long ago have been
extinguished, the entire Old World would have been barbarized, and at the head
of civilization today would be stagnant China.
ATTILA
If the
extraordinary individual, who styled himself not unjustly the scourge of God
and terror of the world, had never existed, the history of the Huns would have
been very little more interesting to us at the present epoch, than that of
the Gepidae, or Alans, or any of the chief nations that were assembled
under his banner; but the immensity of the exploits, and the still greater
pretensions of that memorable warrior, render it a matter of interest to know
the origins of his power, and the very beginnings from which his countrymen had
arisen, to threaten the subjugation of the civilized world, and the extirpation
of the Christian religion. There has probably existed, before or since the time
of Attila, but one other potentate, who, in his brief career, passed like a
meteor over Europe, building up an empire, that was maintained by his personal
qualities, and crumbled to atoms the moment he was withdrawn from it, leaving,
however, consequences of which it is difficult to calculate the extent or
termination.
One of the
greatest losses that the history of Europe has sustained, is that of the eight
books of the life of Attila, written in Greek by Priscus, who was his
cotemporary and personally acquainted with him, and who, by the fragments that
have been preserved to us, appears to have been most particular, candid, and
entertaining, in his details. The loss is the more to be regretted, as it is
certain that they did exist entire in the library of the Vatican after the
restoration of literature, though it appears to have been ascertained by
anxious research, that they are no longer to be found there; and there seems
reason to suspect, that they may have been purposely destroyed through the
jealousy of the Church of Rome, lest their publication should bring to light
any facts or circumstances, that might militate against its policy or
doctrines; when we consider the conspicuous part which was acted by the bishop
of Rome, at the close of the Italian campaign of Attila, a period not long
antecedent to the claim advanced by his successors to religious and political
supremacy.
As we are thus
deprived of the great fountain of information, our materials relating to the
events of some of the most important portions of his life, and especially the
particulars of its termination, are lamentably deficient. Under these
circumstances it will be necessary to compare the brief and conflicting notices
which have descended to us, with the copious and varied details of the most
rude and ancient romances of Europe, which, however involved in confusion, and
discredited by fiction and anachronism, can scarcely be supposed to have been
built upon no foundation. The little we know concerning the origin and early
habits of the Huns, is chiefly derived from Chinese writers who were consulted
by Des Guignes, which may be compared with the statements of ancient
chroniclers, and, as far as relates to the general manners of the Huns and other
tribes that emerged from Asia, is most strikingly confirmed by Latin authority.
Two different
accounts have been given by the old chroniclers of the origin of the Huns. The
one, that they were descended from Magog the son of Japhet, brought forth by his
wife Enech in Havilah, fifty-eight years after the deluge; the other,
that the two branches of the Huns and Magyars were derived from Hunor and Magor,
elder sons of Nimrod, who settled in the land of Havilah (meaning thereby
Persia), and, having followed a deer to the banks of the Maeotis, obtained
permission from Nimrod to settle there. By the agreement of all
writers, the Huns were Scythians, and if the Scythian tribes were descended and
named from Cush, son of Ham, the Huns could not have been of the blood of
Japhet. A singular fabulous origin has been attributed to them.
Filimer king
of the Goths, and son of Gundaric the great, having issued from
Scandinavia and occupied the Scythian territory, found certain witches amongst
his people, who were called in their language Aliorumnae or Alirunes,
and he drove them far from his army into the desert, where they led a wandering
life, and, uniting themselves with the unclean spirits of the wilderness,
produced a most ferocious offspring, which lurked at first amongst the marshes,
a swarthy and slender race, of small stature, and scarcely endowed with the
articulate voice of a human being. It rarely, if ever, happens that a very old
tradition is entirely without meaning or foundation, and it may perhaps be drawn
from this absurd fable, that the Huns were of mixed descent between the Goths
and Tartars.
Great and
formidable to all Europe as the Huns were in the reign of Attila, it is a
matter of doubt what language they spoke. Eccard is quoted by Pray as
arguing that they were Slavs, and used the Slavonic tongue, because Priscus
only mentions two barbarian languages, as having been spoken in the camp of
Attila, which were the Gothic and Hunnish; and he observes, that if the
Slavonic and Hunnish had not been identical he would have mentioned
the former also.
Pray, anxious, as
are all the Hungarian writers, to identify the ancient. Huns with the Avares of
a later period, with the Magyars, and their own countrymen, argues against
this, asserting that the Slavs did not enter Dalmatia and Illyria, till the
time when the Avars were in Hungary, about a century after the days
of Attila, and that the Tartars, to whom he refers the Hunnish origin,
are not Slavonians.
There were,
however, certainly Sarmatian nations under Attila, of which the Quadi may be
particularly mentioned, and the words of Ovid distinguish the Sarmatian from
the Gothic, as much as those of Priscus do the Hunnish language. But
in truth Priscus does not say that only two languages were spoken, though he
names the Gothic and Hunnish as prevalent, and perhaps as being only
dialects of one tongue, for he nowhere asserts them to be radically distinct;
and a brief examination of ancient evidence will perhaps lead us rather to
consider it as a Teutonic dialect, than allied to the modern Hungarian. Priscus
invariably uses the word Scythian, to include the Gothic nations with the Huns,
and, if they were radically different in language as well as appearance, it is
very difficult to understand how they should have been so classed under one
denomination. He speaks also of their singing Scythian songs, which would
convey no distinct meaning if the Scythians had two languages as widely
different as the Gothic and Hungarian. In three other passages he mentions the
language of the Huns. He says that on the embassy, with which he was himself
associated, Maximin took with him Rusticius, “who was skilled in the
tongue of the barbarians, and accompanied us into Scythia”. Whenever he speaks
of the Huns specially, he calls them Huns. He says of Zercon the
buffoon, that, “mixing the tongue of the Huns and that of the Goths with that
of the Italians, he kept the whole court, except Attila, in incessant
laughter”; concerning which it may be observed, that, if the Hunnish and
Gothic were not merely dialects of one language, the jests of Zercon could
have been intelligible to very few of Attila’s soldiers, and could
scarcely have kept the whole court in a roar of laughter. In the other
passage he says, “The Scythians, being a mixed people, adhere to their own
barbarous tongue, either that of the Huns, or that of the Goths, or even those
who have intercourse with the Romans, that of the Italians, but they do not
readily speak Greek, except the captives from Thrace and the maritime part of
Illyria”. This is the sum of the information transmitted to us concerning
their language, which seems to point rather to kindred tongues, like those of
the Danes and Swedes which are easily understood by either nation, than to
two languages radically different.
In the account
given by Priscus of his progress through the north of Hungary with the embassy,
he states that they were furnished instead of wine, with what was called by the
natives meed, writing the word in Greek medos; and as
those natives were the very Huns of Attila, near his
principal residence, it affords a strong reason for attributing to
them a Teutonic dialect, though the word kamos which he
mentions for a sort of beer is not so easily traced. The name
of Alirunes or Alrunae given to the mothers
of the Huns, and stated by Jordanes in the first century after the death of
Attila to have been the name used by the people amongst whom they originated,
is decidedly a Teutonic word, which may be found in the Scandinavian Edda,
written aulrunar. Jordanes tells us that the Huns called their
fortified seat in Pannonia Hunniwar, which is indubitably Teutonic, the
last syllable being the word which, according to the dialect, is called ware,
ward, or guard, from which last form of the word our court is derived. The
king, who led the Huns into Europe, is named by Jordanes, Balamber or Balamer,
which is actually the same name as that of Walamir king of the Goths
under Attila, whom Malchus calls Balamir. We know from the
history of Menander that the river Volga was called Attila, or as the Greeks
write it Atteelas, in German Ethel, in which form the name is
connected with the Teutonic edel, noble; and the name of king
Attila in the oldest German is Etzel, in which form it is possibly
connected with the Teutonic steel, alluding to the sword-god, which
with a similar deduction from the Greek chalybos, has been
called chalybdicos, chalib, and excalibur.
The documents, which could clear up the point, are probably lost beyond all
chance of recovery, but it seems questionable whether the nationality of modern
Hungarians has not induced them to claim a connection of blood with the Huns of
Attila, to which they are perhaps not entitled.
Desericius in
his voluminous work has exerted himself to demonstrate that the Huns had no
affinity with the Alans, Goths, Gepids, Vandals, and Lombards, and
they were certainly a race differing in stature and color from the
Alans, which proves them to have been long distinct, though they may have
branched out at a period later than the dispersion of mankind in the time of
Peleg; but they dwelt near to each other, and their habits and worship were
precisely the same. The question above proposed is whether their language was a
dialect of the general Teutonic tongue spoken by those nations, (perhaps even
an admixture of that with some other language) or radically and entirely
distinct like the modern Hungarian. The oldest account we have of the Scythians
is given in detail by Herodotus, about 450 years before the birth of Christ;
380 years after Christ Ammianus Marcellinus described the Alans who were of the
Gothic family, with manners exactly similar to those of the Huns, and the same
sword-worship which had been described as used amongst the Scythians by the
father of profane history; and in the following century we find Attila the Hun,
obtaining great reverence by means of a like sanctified sword, and making the
very Scythian sacrifices described by Herodotus, and the Huns and Goths still
called promiscuously Scythians by the Greek writers. The Teutonic nations and
the Huns had therefore during at least 900 years before the death of Attila
been known under one common denomination, and entertained the same habits and a
similar religion; and it will not easily be proved that their languages had no
affinity, by those who wish to establish the identity of the Huns and
Hungarians.
The Hunnish nation,
says Ammianus Marcellinus in the fourth century, little known by ancient
records, and dwelling nigh the frozen ocean beyond the Meotian marshes,
exceeds every known degree of savageness. From their very infancy their cheeks
are gashed so deeply with steel, that the growth of the beard is impeded by
scars; they grow up, like eunuchs, without beards or manly beauty. The whole
race have compact and firm limbs, and thick necks, a prodigiously square
stature, like two-legged beasts or stumps coarsely shaped into human figures.
They are so hardy,
that they require neither fire, nor seasoned victuals, but live on the roots of
wild plants, and the half-raw flesh of any sort of cattle, which they quickly
warm by placing it under them on the backs of their horses.
They never
frequent any sort of buildings, which they look upon as set apart for the
sepulchres of the dead, and, except in case of urgent necessity, they will not
go under the shelter of a roof, and they think themselves insecure there, not
having even a thatched cottage amongst them; but, wandering in the woods from
their very cradle, they are accustomed to endure frost, hunger, and thirst.
They are clothed
with coverings made of linen and the skins of wood mice stitched together, nor
have they any change of garment, or ever put off that which they wear till it
is reduced to rags and drops off.
They cover their
heads with curved fur caps; their hairy legs are defended by goat skins, and
their shoes are so ill fitted as to prevent their stepping freely, on which
account they are not well qualified for infantry; but, almost growing to the
backs of their horses which are hardy and ill-shaped, and often sitting upon
them after the fashion of a woman, they perform any thing they have to do on
horseback. There they sit night and day, buy and sell, eat and drink, and
leaning on the neck of the animal take their slumber, and even their deepest
repose.
They hold their
councils on horseback. Without submitting to any strict royal authority, they
follow the tumultuous guidance of their principal individuals, and act usually
by a sudden impulse. When attacked they will sometimes stand to fight, but
enter into battle drawn up in the figure of wedges, with a variety of frightful
vociferations. Extremely light and sudden in their movements, they disperse
purposely to take breath, and careering without any formed line they make vast
slaughter of their enemies; but, owing to the rapidity of their maneuvers,
they seldom stop to attack a rampart, or hostile camp.
At a distance they
fight with missile weapons, most skilfully pointed with sharp bones. Near at
hand they engage with the sword, without any regard for their own persons, and
while the enemy is employed in parrying the attack, they entangle his limbs with
a noose in such a manner as to deprive him of the power of riding or resisting.
None of them plough, or touch any agricultural instrument.
They all ramble
about like fugitives without any fixed place of abode with the wagons in which
they live, in which their wives weave their dark clothing, cohabit with them,
bring forth their children, and in which they rear the boys to the age of
puberty. Faithless in truces, inconstant, animated by every new suggestion of
hope, they give way to every furious incitement.
They are as
ignorant, as irrational animals, of the distinction between honesty and
dishonesty, versatile and obscure in speech, influenced by no religious or
superstitious fear, insatiably covetous of gold, so fluctuating arid irritably
that they often fall off from their companions without any sufficient cause,
and reconcile themselves again, without any steps having been taken to pacify
them. Such were the Huns when they burst into Europe about the year 374 after
Christ, and such they had been from the earliest period of history.
After the
confusion of tongues in Sennaar (2247 BC) the Huns are
said to have migrated into the mountains of Armenia and Georgia. Thence,
emerging into the plain between the Tanais and Volga, they divided,
part to the east, and part to the west. What became of those who travelled west
does not appear, if the Huns are to be considered as distinct both from the
Teutonic and Slavonian races. We read in some writers of dark and white Huns;
the former being undoubtedly the Huns proper, and the latter some of the yellow
haired tribes like the Alans, who dwelt in their vicinity with habits very
similar. The Huns who travelled eastward led a pastoral life, enclosed amongst
the mountains, and had no intercourse with other nations, but perpetual warfare
with the Chinese, from whom the only information concerning them is derived.
The Chinese make
mention of the Huns 2207 BC dwelling to the NE, of China,
feeding on the flesh of their flocks and dressed in skins. In their dealings
with other people their affirmation held the place of an oath. They punished
murder and theft, that is amongst themselves, with certain death. They
accustomed their children to hunt and use arms. In their earliest years they
shot birds and mice with arrows; growing bigger they pursued hares and foxes.
No one amongst them could be deemed a man, till he had slain an enemy, or was
bold and skilful enough to do so. It was their custom to attack their enemies
unexpectedly, and to fly as rapidly when it was expedient. The great speed of
their horses facilitated this mode of warfare, and the Chinese, who were
accustomed to standing fight, could not pursue and vanquish them: and the Huns,
if defeated, retired unto desert places, where the enemy would find it very
grievous to follow them.
They were quite
illiterate; their weapons were bows and arrows, and swords. They had more or
fewer wives according to their means, and it was not unusual for a son to marry
his stepmother, or a brother the widow of his brother. The Hun who could rescue
the body of a slain comrade from the enemy became heir to all his
property. They were anxious to make captives, whom they employed in
tending their flocks. Thieves amongst other nations, they were faithful to each
other.
They lived in
tents placed upon wagons. The ancient Huns adorned their coffins with precious
things, gold, silver, and jewels, according to the rank of the deceased, but
they erected no tombs. Many servants and concubines followed the body at the
funeral, and served it as if living; troops of righting men accompanied it, and
at the full moon they began combats which lasted till the change. Then they cut
off the heads of many prisoners, and each of the fighting men was rewarded with
a measure of wine made from sour milk.
Teuman, who reigned
after the death of Chi-Hoam-tio, 210 years before Christ, over the Huns between
the Irtish on the west, and the Amur, which rises in the mountains to
the east of lake Baikal, and flows into the sea opposite Kamtchatka,
pressed the Chinese on his southern confines, which appears to be the earliest
specific action of the Huns upon record. He was killed by his son Meté,
who took the title of Tanjoo or Tanju, meaning son of heaven.
Whatever be the etymology of the name Tanju, coming to us through the Chinese
historians, we cannot rely upon it as being a Hunnish title expressed
in the Hunnish language. Some of the names they give of the
ancient Hunnish potentates are so decidedly and radically different
from the names borne by Hunnish princes in Europe, that they must be
looked upon as Chinese or Tartar versions of the names, rather than as the very
appellations by which those persons were distinguished amongst their
countrymen, unless their language underwent a complete change in the course of
a few centuries after this period.
It is certainly
possible that the Huns, if they had originally some affinity to the Tartars, as
their personal appearance seems to indicate, having after centuries of
connection with other Tartar races, been expelled by them from their seats, and
having in their turn subdued their Gothic neighbours, may have gradually
renounced much of the language of their invaders and adopted in great part the
speech of the more humanized people who by conquest had become associated with
them. The abode of the Tanjoos was in the mountains of Tartary.
On the first moon
of the year the grandees of the empire or principal officers, each of whom
commanded ten thousand men, assembled to hold a general council at the court of
the Tanjoo, which ended with a solemn sacrifice.
At the fifth moon
they met in another place, and sacrificed to Heaven, and Earth, and the Manes
of their ancestors. In the autumn they assembled at a third place to number the
people and cattle. The Tanjoo every day proceeded into the open plain
to worship the sun, and every evening in like manner adored the moon. The title
used by the Tanjoo, when he wrote to the emperor of China, was, the
great Tanjoo of the Huns, engendered by Heaven and Earth, established
by the sun and moon. The tent of the Tanjoo was on the left hand, as
the most honourable place amongst the Huns, and it faced to the west. We know
from Priscus that, when he visited the court of Attila, the seats on his right
hand were considered the most honourable, and those on his left of secondary
consideration; by which it appears that even in their highest ceremonials the
Huns of his time had departed from their ancient custom, and adopted that which
prevailed amongst the Goths. Mete was a successful prince, and extended the
limits of his kingdom.
In the year
162 BC the Huns vanquished the people called Yue-chi, settled
along the Gihon, who were afterwards called Jeta or Yetan, and
were identical with the Getae. These adored Buddha, and carried the worship
of Woden, who is the same Deity, into Europe; and, being of the Gothic
race, they perhaps in some measure engrafted their habits and language on those
of their ferocious conquerors. The empire of the Tanjoos having
gradually increased, and having been maintained by frequent contests with
various success against the Chinese, began to decline about the time of the
birth of Christ, and in AD 93 it was entirely overthrown,
the Tanjoo being defeated in battle, taken, and beheaded.
The Sien-pi
Tartars occupied their territory, and many of the Huns mingling with them took
the name of Sien-pi. The rest migrated westward into the country of
the Baschkirs. This empire of the Huns, who are not mentioned by the
Chinese as being a Tartar race, is said to have subsisted, from 1230 years
before, till 93 years after the birth of our Saviour, but the succession
of Tanjoos is only known since 210 BC.
In 109 the Huns
occupied Bucharia, and the country between the Gihon or Oxus, and
the Irtish. In 120 they defeated the Iguri to the south, and
killed the Chinese general who led them. In 134 they were themselves defeated
by the Iguri, and in 151 they were driven further west by the Sien-pis.
In 310 we are told
that, Lieou-toung king of the Huns having fallen in love with the
widow of his father, she answered his passion, but was so bitterly reproached
by her own son, that she died of vexation. This circumstance, transmitted to us
amongst the scanty records of Hunnish transactions, militates
directly against the accusation made against them by some modern writers of
utter indifference concerning all incestuous connections.
It seems that the
queen, mother of the heir to the throne, being dead, the king had taken to his
throne another wife who had thereupon the rights of queen, and was not inheritable
like the numerous wives of secondary condition who replenished the harem. Her
submitting to the passion of her stepson was therefore probably regarded not
only as an improper connection, but as a degradation from the rank and station
she occupied as widow of the king. It is not improbable that the first wife
enjoyed the rights of queen, on whose death the lady next espoused might
succeed to her privileges; but we have no certainty that the wife, who was to
have especial rights, and whose issue were to inherit, may not have been
selected by the choice of her husband from the multitude of his wives.
In 316 Lieou-yao king
of the Huns took prisoner a general of the Tsin Tartars, and invited
him to a feast. On receiving the royal invitation, the captive warrior answered
that he was so grieved by the disasters of his country, that he would rather
die than survive them. Thereupon he was immediately accommodated with a sword
and destroyed himself. Having failed in his first gracious intentions towards his
prisoner, the monarch next turned his attention to the widow of the Tartar, who
had also fallen into his hands, and was very beautiful, and he proposed to
marry her: but the lady rejected his kindness with the same Spartan repugnance
as her husband, whom she declared herself unwilling to outlive. The Hunnish monarch
was equally scrupulous of thwarting her inclinations, and he was reduced to the
gratification of burying them both in the most pompous manner.
In 318 the Topa Tartars
gained possession of the country east of the Irtish. At this period
the Tanjoo had his principal abode in the land of the Baschkirs,
but his territory extended east to the Hi, and stretched westward to the
Caspian. The Sien-pis confined them on the east, and the Topas driving
the Sien-pis on the Huns, forced the latter further westward. On the
south and south-west they were stopped by the Persians. From about the birth of
Christ to the time of Valentinian the first (AD 364) the Alans had
inhabited the lands between the Volga and the Tanais.
Ammianus
Marcellinus, who died soon after the Huns entered Europe, states that the Alans
occupied in his time the immeasurable and uncultivated wastes of the Scythians
beyond the Tanais, taking their name from that of a mountain. The Neuri inhabited
the midland parts near some abrupt hills, which were exposed to the north wind
and severe frost. Next to them dwelt, the Budini, and the Geloni, a
warlike people who flayed their slain enemies and made coverings of the human
skins for themselves and their horses.
The Agathyrsi bordered
on them, who dyed both their bodies and their hair with blue spots; the lower
classes with few and small marks, the nobles with thicker spots more deeply
stained.
The Melanchaenae and
Anthropophagi were said to wander on the skirts of these nations, devouring
their captives, and a large tract reaching to the northeast towards the
Chinese was understood to be left unoccupied by the withdrawal of various
tribes from the vicinity of those ferocious marauders.
The Alans had
spread themselves very widely towards the east, where they had many populous
tribes, who reached even to the banks of the Ganges. Like the Huns they had
neither plough, nor cottage; they lived on flesh and milk, in wagons with
curved coverings of bark. When they arrived at a grassy district, they arranged
their wagons in a circle, and as soon as the grass was consumed, they shifted
their quarters. The plains which they frequented were very productive of grass,
and interspersed with tracts that bore apples or other fruit, which they
consumed when occasion required. Their tender years were passed in the wagons, but
they were early habituated to ride, and esteemed it disgraceful to walk, and
were all by instruction skilful and expert warriors.
They were
universally tall and well made, with yellowish hair, and remarkable by their
eyes, in which ferocity was tempered with a more pleasing expression; swift in
their movements, lightly armed, and much like the Huns in everything, but more
polished in their dress and mode of living, making inroads both to hunt and
plunder, as far as the Cimmerian Bosporus, and into Armenia and Media. Perils
and warfare were their delight; the slaughter of a man their highest boast; and
they reviled with bitterness those who lived to old age or died by accidents,
esteeming it blessed to fall in battle. They fastened the hairy scalps of their
enemies to their horses for trappings and ornament. They erected no temples,
but planted a naked sword with barbarous rites in the ground and worshipped it
as the protector of the district round which they had arranged their wagons.
They had a singular mode of divining by collecting together a number of
straight twigs, and after a time separating them again with some sort of
incantation. Slavery was unknown amongst them; and the whole nation was
considered to be of noble blood. Their judges were chosen on account of the
prowess they had shown in warfare.
Upon these nations
the Huns were driven by the inroads of the Tartars, who continued to force them
towards the west. In the interval between the years 318 and 374, advancing
northward of the Caspian, they subdued the Alans, associating numbers of them
with themselves, and forcing the rest to take refuge in Europe.
In 374 they
crossed the Maeotian swamp, or at least the river Tanais, into
Europe. They had long considered the marshes to be an impenetrable girdle, till
one of their nation, named Baudetes, having adventured more than usual in
pursuit of a stag, succeeded in penetrating through them, and on his return
communicated the important intelligence to his countrymen. Bishop Jordanes says
that the stag led on the hunters by occasionally stopping to entice them, till
it had conducted them into European Scythia, which he verily believes the foul
spirits from whom they were descended devised out of enmity to its inhabitants.
The Huns profited
immediately by the discovery of this passage, which opened to them a new world,
and, whether they really crossed the Maeotis stagnant and choked with
reeds or the Tanais higher up, they soon pushed their victorious arms
to the banks of the Danube. They immediately attacked and reduced the Alipzuri and
several other tribes, not omitting to sacrifice a due proportion of the first
captives they made, according to the Scythian custom, to the Sword-God whom
they worshipped. The hideous appearance of their swarthy and cicatrized faces,
their short, stout, and erect figures, the swiftness of their steeds, and the
skill of their archers, spread dismay on all sides, and they came like a
hurricane upon the several nations who were peaceably depasturing the
European banks of the Tanais.
The Alcidzuri, Itamari, Tuncassi,
and Boisci, were subdued on the first inroad; and the following season was
fatal to the liberty of the European Alans, excepting such as preferred to
migrate westward, and seek the protection or extort the toleration of the
Romans. Every conflict was a source of increased power to the Huns, who
compelled the nations they subdued to join with them in further invasions, and
with the sword of the Alans, united to their own, they now attacked the Goths.
Ermanric was
at that time sovereign of the Goths, a man of very advanced years, who was then
lingering under the effects of a wound received from Sarus and Animius,
brothers of Sanielh or Sanilda, whom he had caused to be torn
asunder by wild horses, to avenge himself on her husband, a chieftain of the
Roxolani, who had revolted from him. The conjuncture was favourable to the
invaders, and their king Balamer attacked the broad and fertile lands
of Ermanric, who after vainly attempting to defend them, put an end to his
own life. The Ostrogoths were subdued, having been previously weakened by the
secession of the Visigoths, who had applied to the Roman emperor Valens to give
them a part of Thrace or Moesia, south of the Danube, preferring a
nominal dependance on the Romans, to the heavier yoke of the Hunnish invaders.
The request was granted, and they were baptized into the creed of Valens, who
was an Arian. Ermanric having perished, the Ostrogoths remained
subject to the Huns, under the administration of Winithar or Withimir of
the family of the Amali, who retained the insignia of royalty.
The Gepidae were
reduced under subjection to the Huns at the same period, and so rapid was their
progress, that, within two years after crossing the Moeotis, they wrested
the Pannonias from the Romans, either by force of arms, or by
negotiation. In 378 Fritigern, king of those Goths, who had inundated
Thrace, being irritated by Lupicinus and Maximus, and pressed by famine,
made war upon the Romans. He was assisted by the Huns and Alans whom he
subsidized, and many actions took place with various success. Valens, alarmed
at their progress, made a hasty peace with the Persians, and returned suddenly
from Antioch to Constantinople. Gratian advanced with a considerable force to
form a junction with the army of Valens, but the latter, confident of victory,
and fearful of losing, or of sharing with Gratian, the lustre of that success
which he anticipated, rashly attacked the Goths and their allies at the twelfth
milestone from Adrianople near Perinthus.
The Armenian
cavalry were routed by the first charge of the Goths, and left the infantry
completely exposed to the enemy. The attack of the horse was supported by a
shower of arrows, in the use of which the Huns were particularly skilful, and
the Roman infantry was completely routed and cut to pieces by the swords and
billhooks of the barbarians.
Valens took refuge
in a house, where he was burnt alive by his pursuers, a practice not uncommon
amongst the Scandinavian nations.
Gratian, receiving
intelligence of this disaster, immediately recalled from Spain Theodosius, who
in the following year repaired the falling fortunes of Rome, and, both by
successful conflicts and by conciliatory offers and presents, put an end to the
war. The pacification was however of short duration, and in 380 Gratian, being
molested by the Huns, obtained the assistance of the Goths whom he took into
his service.
It was probably at
this time, that Balamer king of the Huns violated the treaties be had
made with the Romans, and laid waste many towns and much of their territory
with his armies, stating that his subjects were in want of the necessaries of
life. The Romans sent an embassy to him, and promised to pay him nineteen
pounds weight of gold annually, on condition of his abstaining from a renewal
of such incursions. Whether the Ostrogoths had taken part with the Romans or
not in 380, Winithar soon after attempted to throw off the Hunnish yoke,
and his efforts were eminently successful. In the first encounter he captured
a Hunnish king called Box, together with his sons, and seventy men of
distinction, all of whom he crucified, to terrify the rest of their countrymen.
Nothing else is known concerning this Hunnish prince, but it seems
that from the time of the invasion of Europe in 374 till the murder of Bleda by
his brother Attila, the Huns were never governed by a sole king.
For a short
time Winithar the Goth reigned independent; Balamer, with the
assistance of Sigismund the son of Hunnimund the Ostrogoth, who
continued faithful to the Huns, attacked him, but was discomfited in two
successive engagements. In the third battle on the banks of the river Erac, Balamer killed
him, having wounded him surreptitiously in the head with an arrow, as they were
approaching to each other. The defeat of his partisans was complete. Balamer married
his granddaughter Waladamarea, and possessed the whole empire, a Gothic
prince however ruling over the Ostrogoths under the authority of the Huns.
Hunnimund the
son of Ermanric succeeded to Winithar, and fought successfully
against the Suevi. His son Thorismond reigned after him, and in the
second year after his accession gained a great victory over the Gepidae,
but was killed by the fall of his horse. The Goths greatly lamented him, and
remained forty years after his death without a king, Berismund his
son having followed the Visigoths into the west to avoid the Hunnish ascendancy. Balamer died
in 386, soon after his marriage, probably leaving no children, and it is not
known who immediately succeeded him.
The first king
mentioned by the Roman writers after this period is Huldin, but nothing is
detailed concerning him before the year 400.
It seems probable
that the three kings Bela, Cheve, and Cadica, named by the Hungarians
as having reigned simultaneously, belong to the reign of Balamer, and
perhaps Bela was the real name of the king who was styled by the Romans Balamerus.
Under them was said to have been fought a great battle at a place called Potentiana,
which from its circumstances seems referable to the period when the Huns first
occupied Pannonia, seven or eight years before the death of Balamer.
Bela, Cheve,
and Cadica, pitched their camp upon the Teiss. Maternus, being
at that time praefect of Pannonia, administered the affairs of Dalmatia, Mysia,
Achaea, Thrace, and Macedonia. He solicited the aid of Detricus (Dietric or
Theodoric), who then ruled over a part of Germany, and having collected a great
miscellaneous force to resist the common enemy, they encamped at Zaazhalon in
Pannonia, not far from the southern bank of the Danube, and remained posted
near Potentiana and Thethis.
The Huns crossed
the Danube below the site of Buda, surprised the allied army in the night, and
routed them with great slaughter, and encamped in the vale of Tharnok.
There the Huns were attacked in their turn, when the allies had rallied their
scattered forces, and after a severe contest the Huns were compelled in the
evening to recross the Danube and return to their former position, but the
victorious army was too much weakened to pursue them, and, fearful of a fresh
attack, retired to Tulna, a town of Austria in the neighbourhood of
Vienna.
It seems extremely
improbable that a narrative so circumstantial and apparently impartial, though
discredited by some modern writers, should be entirely fabulous, and the
persons mentioned in it fictitious. It is evident, that it must be referred to
the period when the Goths and Romans were acting together, that is the year
380, when, according to the Latin writers, the Goths asked the assistance of
Gratian against the Huns, and when, according to Priscus, Balamer violated
the treaties and laid waste much of the Roman territory; Balamer (perhaps
identical with Bela) being the chief sovereign, Box, Cheve, and Cadica,
inferior kings over portions of the Huns.
To Balamer probably
succeeded immediately Mundiuc, the father of Attila, but nothing is known
of the particular actions of his life, and he is never named as concerned
either with or against the Romans, in any military operations. In 388 the Huns
were employed by Gratian against the Juthungi in Bavaria, and
destined to act against Maximus in Gaul. In 394 they sent auxiliaries to
Theodosius mixed with Alans and Goths under Gaines, Sanies, and Bacurius.
In 397 it seems that Theotimus, bishop of Tomi or Tomiswar in
Bulgaria, converted some Huns to Christianity, and it is not improbable that
these converts were the persons whom Rhuas and Attila demanded and crucified.
From about the year 400 till 411 Huldin commanded the Huns in
immediate contact with the empire, but we have no reason for supposing him to
have been sole monarch of the Hunnish nation.
In 400 he killed
Gaines, and sent his head to Arcadius. In conjunction with Sarus who was king
over a portion of the Goths, Huldin and his Huns afforded assistance
to Rome in 406, when Radagais had invaded Italy. Radagais is
said to have been the most savage of all the barbarian monarchs. So strangely
were the various nations blended, who were set in motion by the irruption of
the Huns, and the pressure of the Asiatic Alans and other tribes upon the
pastoral nations of Europe, that it is not known of what people this mighty
commander was originally the ruler. Probably he was king of the Obotritae,
or some other nation in the neighbourhood of Mecklenberg, where he was
worshipped as a God after his death.
He has been styled
by most writers king of the Goths, because a great part of his force was
Gothic, but there is no reason to suppose he was a Visigoth, and he certainly
was not an Ostrogoth. Orosius calls him a pagan and Scythian, which
conveys no distinct information, and it is even not unlikely that he may have
been a Slavonian. Whatever was his own nation, he had been a most successful
adventurer, swelling his army with the fighting men of the tribes which he
successively overthrew, and drawing others to his camp by the renown of his
name, till he had collected an immense confederated army of Vandals, Sueves,
Burgundians, Alans, and Goths. With this force he entered Italy, and laying
waste the whole country north of the Po, he prepared to besiege Florence at the
head of 200,000 soldiers; threatening that he would raze the fortifications of
Rome, and burn her palaces; that he would sacrifice the most distinguished
patricians to his Gods, and compel the rest to adopt the mastruca,
or garment of skin dressed with the hair on, that was worn by some of the
barbarous nations.
The approach of
this formidable enemy filled the Roman capital with dismay: the pagans thought
that under the protection and with the assistance of the Gods, whom he was said
to conciliate by daily immolations of human victims, it was impossible for him
to be overcome, because the Romans neither offered to the Gods any such
sacrifices, nor permitted them to be offered by any one. There was a
concourse of heathens in the town, all believing that they were visited with
this scourge, because the sacred rites of the great Gods had been neglected.
Loud complaints were made, and it was proposed to resume immediately the
celebration of the ancient worship, and throughout the whole city the name of
Christ was loaded with blasphemies; but the degenerate Romans were more
disposed to curse and offer up sacrifice, than to fight in defence of the
empire. A very small force was collected under Stilicho, and the defence of
Italy was entrusted to Huldin with a Hunnish, Sarus with a
Gothic, and Goar with an Alan, force of hired auxiliaries.
The prudent
measures of Stilicho ensured their success. The invading army was camped on the
arid ridge above Faesulae, ill furnished with water and provisions.
Stilicho conducted his approaches with such skill, that he blocked up all the
avenues, and rendered it impossible for the enemy to draw out his army in line
against him. Without the uncertainty of a hazardous conflict, without any
loss to be compensated by victory, the army defending Rome ate, drank, and were
merry, while the invaders hungered, and thirsted, and pined away without hope
of extricating themselves from their calamitous situation. Radagais despairing
abandoned his army, fled, and was intercepted.
The conqueror has
been accused of sullying the glory of this achievement, by the deliberate
murder or execution of his prisoner. A third part of the army surrendered, and
the captives were so numerous, that herds of them were sold for single pieces
of gold, and such was their misery, that the greater part of them perished
after having been purchased. The entire credit of the discomfiture of the
invaders, is given by the writers of that age to the troops of Huldin and
Sarus, and the Roman forces are not mentioned.
There were twelve
thousand noble Goths whom the Latins called optimati in the
army of Radagais, and with these, after the disaster of their leader,
Stilicho entered into confederacy. It appears by the chronicle of Prosper, that
the army of Radagais was separated in three divisions under distinct
chiefs; one division only perished at Faesulae; the other two were
untouched, and his remaining Goths were afterwards diverted by Stilicho into
Gaul. It seems that there must have been treachery in the invading army, which
was not unlikely to occur, seeing that it consisted principally of Goths, and
that he was besieged by Goths under Sarus.
Supposing the two
other divisions of the army of Radagais to have been faithful to him,
it could scarcely be doubted that, when he quitted the troops who
were surrounded at Faesulae, he was attempting to rejoin them,
for the purpose of leading them on to raise the blockade, and was intercepted
in that undertaking: but a due consideration of the subject will lead us to
suspect that the account given by Aventinus is correct, that Huldin and
Sarus had entered Italy in concert with Radagais, but were seduced from
his authority by Stilicho. Their force must have been part of the two divisions
which remained uncaptured, and the Goths of Sarus a portion of the very troops
which Stilicho afterwards persuaded to remove their quarters into Gaul; for it
is impossible otherwise to explain how a sufficient power of Huns and Goths
could be at hand to oppose an army of 200,000 men, which had already overrun
and laid waste all the north of Italy, and had placed itself between Stilicho
and the dominions of the Huns. The probability is therefore strong, that
Stilicho discomfited Radagais by means of his own auxiliaries, having
by negotiation drawn off from him two-thirds of his army, and surrounded the
remainder, which might have consisted of sixty or seventy thousand men
nominally, but probably was already reduced by the rude invasion of a hostile
country.
From this period
during some years the Huns do not appear to have manifested any decided
hostility to the Romans. In 409 a small force of Hunnish auxiliaries
assisted them to defeat Ataulfus, and in 410 Honorius appears to have
hired a body of Huns to oppose the progress of Alaric, which is not surprising,
as the Huns were certainly not united under any sole monarch, and both they and
the Goths seem at that time to have been ready to assist the highest bidder.
The peaceable demeanour of the Huns towards the empire is probably the reason
that so little has reached us concerning their kings at this period.
No mention
of Huldin occurs after the campaign against Radagais, and,
although we are told that the Hunnish satellites or auxiliaries of
Stilicho were destroyed when he himself was killed, we hear of no Hunnish king,
till the brief mention which is made by Photius, in detailing the contents
of the work of Olympiodorus, of Charato, chief of the Hunnish petty
kings. The circumstances mentioned by him are certainly referable to the period
between the usurpation of Jovinus in 411 and his death in 413.
Olympiodorus was
sent on an embassy from Constantinople to Donatus and the Hunnish princes,
whose marvellous skill in archery struck him with astonishment. Who Donatus was
is not known, but he must have been either a Hunnish king, or a
chieftain of some nation closely connected with them. Donatus was ensnared by
an oath, probably of safe conduct, and unlawfully and treacherously put to
death by the Romans. Charato the chief of the Hunnish kings
was greatly exasperated, but the Romans contrived to appease his resentment by
presents. Nothing further is known of Charato; he may have been the chief
ruler of the Huns, or which is more probable, only the first of the petty kings
under Mundiuc.
From the year 413
no true historical competitor appears to contest the occupation of the Hunnish throne
with Mundiuc, though a false king has been conjured up by Pray in his
Hungarian annals, in the person of Rugas or Rhoilus. At this
period the celebrated Roman Aetius was a hostage in the Hunnish court,
having been previously three years a hostage to Alaric the Goth. It is most
probable that he was given as surety to the Huns for the safe return of the
auxiliary force which they sent in 410 against Alaric. He was the son of Gaudentius,
by birth a Scythian or Goth, who had risen from the condition of a menial to
the highest rank in the cavalry.
His mother was a
noble and wealthy Italian, and at the time of his birth his father was a man of
praetorian dignity. Aetius, having passed his youth as a hostage at the courts
of Alaric and the Hunnish king, married the daughter of Carpileo,
was made a count, and had the superintendence of the domestics and palace
of Joannes. He was a man of middle size, of manly habits, well made,
neither slight nor heavy, active in mind and limbs, a good horseman, a good
archer and poleman, of consummate military skill, and equally adroit in the
conduct of civil affairs; neither avaricious, nor covetous, endowed with great
mental accomplishments, and never swerving from his purpose at the instigation
of bad advisers; very patient of injuries, desirous at all times of laborious
occupation, regardless of danger, bearing without inconvenience hunger, thirst,
and watchfulness; to whom it is known to have been foretold in his early youth
that he was destined to rise to great authority.
Such is the
character given of him by a contemporary writer; to all which might have been
added, that he was a consummate villain, a treacherous subject, a fake
Christian, and a double dealer in every action of his life. In 423 his
patron Joannes, known by the name of John the tyrant, (which title only
implies that he possessed himself of unlawful authority) seized the opportunity
of the death of Honorius to assume the sovereign power, and sent ambassadors to
Theodosius, who threw them into prison. In order to strengthen himself against
the attack which he had reason to expect, he dispatched Aetius, who was
then superintendant of his palace, with a great weight of gold to the
Huns, with many of whom he had become united by close ties of personal
friendship, while he was a hostage at their court.
In 425 the Huns
entered Italy under the guidance of Aetius. Their number has been estimated at
60,000. It is not known by whom they were commanded, though it has been
asserted that Attila was then twenty-five years old and headed the expedition.
At this critical moment Joannes was killed, and the subtle Aetius
immediately made his peace with Valentinian, who was glad to receive the
traitor into favour, on condition of his removing the formidable army of
invaders from Italy. Having advanced in compliance with the request of Aetius,
and already received the gold of Joannes, they were easily prevailed upon
to withdraw by him who had conducted them, and they appear to have returned
home without committing any outrages, which marks the great influence that
Aetius had acquired over their leaders.
It seems however
most probable that they were commanded by Rhuas, who in the succeeding year
threatened that he would destroy Constantinople, and probably made an incursion
into the territory of the Eastern emperor, though the marvellous account which
is given of the expedition by contemporary writers is a gross and palpable
falsehood, which must be detailed only to be confuted.
Theodoret, who
lived at the time when this event is said to have taken place, after speaking
of the destruction of pagan temples and the general superintendence of
Providence, says, “for indeed when Rhoilus the leader of
the Nomad Scythians both crossed the Danube with an army of the
greatest magnitude, and laid waste and plundered Thrace, and threatened that he
would besiege the imperial city, and take it by main force, and utterly destroy
it, God having struck him with lightning and bolts of fire from
above, both destroyed him by fire, and extinguished the whole of
his army”.
Socrates, also
cotemporaneous, writes to the following effect: “After the slaughter of
John the tyrant, the barbarians, whom he had called to his assistance against
the Romans, were prepared to overrun the Roman possessions. The emperor
Theodosius, having heard this, according to his custom, left the care of these
things to the Almighty; and, applying himself to prayer, not long after
obtained the things which he desired; for what straightway befell the
barbarians, it is good to hear. Their leader, whose name was Rugas, dies,
having been struck by lightning, and a pestilence supervening consumed the
greater part of the men who were with him; and this struck the barbarians with
the greatest terror, not so much because they had dared to take up arms against
the noble nation of the Romans, as because they found it assisted by the power
of God”.
Well indeed might
the Huns have trembled, and all Europe have quaked even to the present day at
the recollection of such a manifest and terrible interposition of the Almighty,
if the Hunnish king with an immense army had been so annihilated,
and, as Socrates proceeds to say, in pursuance of an express prophecy: but it
is easy to demonstrate the falsehood of the narrative.
Theodoret immediately
subjoins to the passage cited from him, that the Lord did something of the same
kind in the Persian war, when the Persians, having broken the existing treaty
and attacked the Roman provinces, were overpowered by rain and hail; that in a
former war, Gororanus having attacked a certain town, the archbishop
alone broke his lofty towers and engines to pieces and saved the city; that on
another occasion a city being beleaguered by a barbarian force, the bishop of
the place put with his own hands an enormous stone on a balista or
engine called the apostle Thomas, and firing it off in the name of the Lord
knocked off the head of the king of the barbarians, and thereby raised the
siege. The fellowship of such tales takes away all faith from that which
concerns the Huns. But according to Socrates, the event was prophesied by
Ezekiel, and the prophecy applied previously by the bishop of Constantinople;
and here we arrive at the clue to explain how such a marvellous relation came
to be credited.
“Archbishop
Proclus (continues Socrates) preached on the prophecy of Ezekiel, and the
prophecy was in these words—And thou, son of man, prophesy against Gog the
ruler, Rosh Misoch, and Thobel; for I will judge him with
death and blood, and overflowing rain and hailstones; for I will rain fire and
brimstone upon him and all those with him, and on the many nations with him;
and I will be magnified and glorified, and I will be known in the presence of
many nations and they shall know that I am the Lord”. This prophecy is put
together from the second verse of the 38th ch. of Ezekiel. “Son
of man, set thy face against Gog, the land of Magog, the chief prince of Meshech and
Tubal, and prophesy against him”, and the 22d and 23d verses, “I will plead
against him…” The word Rhos upon which the application of this
prophecy to the Hunnish Rhuas rested, occurs in the Septuagint,
though it is not in the Vulgate, the word having been rendered by St.
Jerome head, and applied to the following word, signifying the head
or chief prince of Meshech. The archbishop was wonderfully praised for this
adaptation of the prophecy, and, according to Socrates, it was the universal
topic of conversation in Constantinople; and doubtless this adaptation gave
birth to the marvellous history.
Rhuas had
threatened to destroy Constantinople; while the people were expecting his
attack, the archbishop assures them that God had expressly denounced by his
prophet that he would destroy Rhuas and his people with fire and brimstone from
heaven. Rhuas never came near Constantinople; the archbishop’s prediction was confirmed
in the important part that concerned the safety of its inhabitants, and the
story became current that it had been entirely fulfilled, and that Rhuas and
his army had perished accordingly. The story is confined to the Greek divines;
not one of the Latin chronicles of that age mentions any expedition of the Huns
under Rhuas against the Eastern empire. Bishops Idatius, Prosper, and
Jordanes are silent; Cassiodorus and Marcellinus are silent; but if such a
manifestation of the Almighty had occurred, or anything that could give colour
to such a belief had really taken place, Europe would have rung with the rumour
of it to its very furthest extremities.
Procopius relates
the death of John the tyrant, but nothing concerning Rhuas. To complete
the refutation of the tale we learn from Priscus, who was sent on an embassy to
the Huns from Constantinople, only twenty-two years after the date of the
supposed catastrophe, that Rhuas was alive after the consulship of Dionysius
which took place in 429, that is three years after the time when the divine
vengeance is said to have overtaken him; and the chronicle of Prosper Tyro says
that Rhuas died in 434. The Hungarian annalist, Pray, carrying absurdity to the
highest pitch, and aware that Rhuas was alive in 429, asserts that there must
have been two kings, one Rugas killed by fire from heaven, and
another by name Rhuas his successor; and he accuses all foregoing writers of
having confounded them, though there is not the slightest reason for imagining
that there were two such kings, except the inconvenient circumstance of his
being found alive long after the time when he should have been exterminated, to
fulfil the prediction of the Byzantine prelate.
It is known
from Jornandes (Jordanes) that Rhuas and Octar were brothers
of Mundiuc and kings of the Huns before the reign of Attila, but that
they had not the sovereign authority over all the Huns. The date of their
accession is no more known than that of Mundiuc.
Pray, who is
always expert in distorting the truth to support his own theory, assumes
inaccurately from Jornandes that, on the death of Mundiuc,
Attila his son was a minor, and that Octar and Rhuas his uncles had
been appointed by his father to be his guardians. There is no authority for the
supposition, excepting that Calanus says Mundiuc commended his sons
with their portion of the kingdom to his brother Subthar.
Octar, otherwise
called Subthar, and Rhuas were probably kings in conjunction with their
brother. We do not know that Attila was not also a king during their life-time,
which the expression of Calanus seems to imply, and even during his father’s
reign, for his own son had regal authority during his life-time. Octar and
Rhuas did not reign over all the Huns, yet after their death and the murder of
his brother Bleda, Attila was sole monarch, which seems to imply that Attila
and Bleda were the kings who had reigned over those not subject to their
uncles. The very circumstance of the joint reign of Attila and Bleda, till the
latter was removed by murder, shows that brothers had a concurrent right of
sovereignty amongst the Huns, and would lead us to conclude that Octar and
Rhuas were associated with Mundiuc, and Calanus expressly says that Subthar (otherwise
called Octar) did reign in conjunction with Mundiuc. Pray argues that
if they held the throne in their own right, and not as guardians, Obarses,
who is mentioned by Priscus as another son of Mundiuc, should have been a
king also, which he does not appear to have been; but this is quite erroneous,
for Obarses is not said to have been by the same mother; and it is
clear, that although the Hunnish kings were allowed to indulge in
polygamy, there was one queen with superior rights, whose children alone were
entitled to succeed. Attila had a legion of wives and a host of children, but
Priscus only mentions by name three sons, who were children of Creca whom
he calls especially his wife and not one of his wives, and they alone succeeded
to his dignities, though the other sons wished the kingdom to foe equally
divided amongst them.
In the obscure
period of Mundiuc’s reign, the first collision of the Huns with the
Burgundians must have taken place, which led to events celebrated in the
romantic legends of almost the whole of Europe north of the Danube, of which it
is however very difficult to unravel the real history. The Burgundiones (supposed
to be the Frugundiones of Ptolemy) had their earliest recorded
kingdom near the Vistula, on the borders of Germany and Sarmatia. At that
time Born-holm or Burgundar-holm in the
Baltic seems to have been their sacred place of deposit for the dead, an island
perhaps consecrated like Mona or Iona.
From the Vistula they
appear to have advanced to the Oder, and having approached the Rhine in 359, as
early as 413 they established themselves, 80,000 in number, on the Gallic side
of that river. Athanaric is the earliest of their chiefs who is
recorded to have reigned near the Rhine, marrying Blysinda daughter
of Marcomir, who was the sire of Pharamond. His eldest son Gondegesil succeeded
him, and dying, left the crown to his brother Gundioc or Gondaker,
who had three sons, Gondegesil, Gondemar, otherwise called Gunnar or Gunther,
and Gondebod.
The royal family
of the Burgundians were called Nibelungian or Nifflungian, and
were supposed to have brought with them a great treasure of gold which was
probably removed from Born-holm. During the reign of Mundiuc the Huns
made successful incursions into the territory of the Burgundians, plundered
their towns, and reduced them to a state of dependence: The Arian priests took
advantage of their miserable and depressed state to inculcate their doctrines
amongst them, representing idolatry to be the cause of their reverses;
whereupon the Burgundians embraced a qualified sort of Christianity, and were
baptized into the Arian faith. Octar, after the death of his brother,
proceeded in the year 430 with a large army of Huns into Burgundy to chastise
their apostate and rebellious vassals; but he was defeated with great
slaughter, and perished in the expedition, though probably not in battle.
Elated by this success, the Burgundian king seems to have thought himself
strong enough to fight single-handed against all opponents, and, instead of
courting the alliance of any one of the great powers, disposed himself to make
head against them all.
When the
unexpected death of John the tyrant had rendered abortive the invasion of Italy
by the Huns under the guidance of Aetius, that skilful negotiator made his
terms with Valentinian and Placidia, and the chief command of the army in
Gaul was the reward which he immediately received for the dismissal of the
Huns. In the very next year he delivered Arles from the Visigoths, and in 428
he recovered from Clodion, king of the Francs, the parts of Gaul near the Rhine
which had been occupied by him, and in the following year he overpowered
the Juthungi in Bavaria.
Having brought to
an end the Vindelician or Bavarian war, in the autumn or the
following spring he defeated the Burgundians who were pressing sorely on the
Belgians, and on that occasion the Huns, Herulians, Francs, Sauromatians,
Salians, and Gelons fought against him. This conflict must have taken
place immediately before the disaster of Octar’s army, when the Huns
and their auxiliaries were probably invading some part of the Belgic territory,
and the check they received on that occasion may have encouraged the
Burgundians to revolt and overpower them.
In the year 432
Bonifacius his rival, who had been urged to acts of treason, and betrayed by
the perfidy of Aetius, returned from Africa to Rome, and obtained the dignity
of Master of the forces. A personal conflict took place between them, in which
Aetius was worsted, but his antagonist died a few days after from the effects
of a wound which he had then received. Aetius retired to his villa, but an
attempt having been there made upon his life by the partisans of Bonifacius, he
fled into Dalmatia, and from thence he proceeded to the court of Rhuas king of
the Huns in Pannonia. The great influence, which he had obtained amongst them,
had suffered no diminution, and at the head of a Hunnish army he once
more threatened the throne of Valentinian. The Romans called the Visigoths to
their assistance, but no engagement took place on this occasion; Placidia and
her son submitted to the demands of Aetius, and he returned again with
accumulated honours to command the army in Gaul. His antagonists were now the
Burgundians, who must have provoked the Romans by making inroads or attempting
to establish themselves on the territory of the empire; and in 435 he
completely routed them with exceeding great slaughter, and forced their king to
throw himself upon his mercy.
In the meantime
immediately after the restoration of Aetius to favour, his protector Rhuas had
died, and Attila had succeeded to the throne in Pannonia. His brother Bleda
reigned over a portion of the Huns, apparently nearer to the confines of Asia.
It is not known with certainty which was the eldest, the fact not being stated
by any author of decisive authority; but as Priscus, whenever he mentions them
in conjunction, places the name of Attila first, and Jordanes states that he
succeeded to the throne with his brother Bleda, the presumption is very strong
that Attila was the eldest.
The Hungarian
writers who have attributed to Attila the extraordinary age of 124, state also
that he was born and died on the same days of the year as Julius Caesar, and
that he was seventy-two years old when he was made king, considering that he
acceded to the throne in 402, and that he was an efficient commander of the
troops, when the Huns entered Europe in 374. This monstrous absurdity is
only surpassed by the assertion, that, after his death, a son, said to have
been borne to him by the Roman princess Honoria, fled to the father of Attila,
who was still living in extreme old age and debility.
The words of
Priscus, who was personally acquainted with Attila, afford a decisive
refutation to those who attribute to him extraordinary longevity and a
protracted reign. He states on the authority of Romulus the father-in-law of
Orestes, the favourite of Attila, with whom he conversed in the presence
of Constantius who had been secretary to Attila, and of Constantiolus a
native of Paeonia which was subject to him, that no king, either of the
Scythians or of any other country, had done such great things in so short a
time. The date of Attila’s accession to the supreme power, at least over
that portion of the Huns, which was in contact with the Romans, is fixed with
great precision by comparing the words of two contemporary writers.
Priscus says that
Rhuas, being king over the Huns, had determined to wage war against the Amilsuri, Itamari, Tonosures, Boisci,
and other nations bordering on the Danube, who had entered into confederation
with the Romans. Thereupon he sent Eslas, who had been accustomed to
negotiate between him and the Romans, to threaten that he would put an end to
the subsisting peace, unless the Roman would deliver up to him all those who
had fled from the Huns to their, protection. The Romans, desirous of sending an
embassy to Rhuas, fixed upon Plinthas of Scythian, and Dionysius of
Thracian, extraction, both generals and men of consular dignity. It was however
not thought expedient to dispatch the ambassadors before the return of Eslas to
the court of his sovereign, and Plinthas sent with him Sengilachus,
one of his dependants to persuade Rhuas to treat with no other Roman than
himself. “But (continues Priscus) Rhuas having come to his end, and the kingdom
of the Huns passed unto Attila, it seemed fitting to the Roman Senate,
that Plinthas should proceed upon the embassy to them”. Dionysius was
not consul till 429, and the chronicle of Prosper Tyro fixes the death of Rhuas
in 434. In that year therefore it appears that Attila succeeded to the throne
of his uncle in conjunction with his brother Bleda, who ruled over a
considerable distinct force of Huns, but may perhaps have resided near Attila
in Pannonia.
The manner of the
death of Rhuas is not recorded, the relation of his destruction by fire from
heaven before Constantinople being disproved; but the language of Jordanes
throws a strong suspicion upon Attila of having removed him by murder, for
after mentioning his succession to his uncles, and relating that he slew his brother,
to obtain an augmentation of power, he adds that he had proceeded by the
slaughter of all his relatives. We have no reason to believe that any other
relative stood between him and the supreme authority, and it is not credible
that Jordanes should represent a single act of fratricide as the murder of all
his family. It is barely possible, that, although Rhuas did not die by
lightning before Constantinople, as alleged by the Greek ecclesiastics, it may
have been given out by his murderers in 434, that he was struck by lightning,
and that he may even have been destroyed by some explosion of chemical fire, as
was probably the case with the emperor Carus, who is universally said by
old historical writers to have been struck by lightning while lying sick in his
tent; though it cannot be reasonably doubted, on reading the letter of his
secretary, that he was murdered by his chamberlains.
The age of Attila
at the time of his accession cannot be ascertained. Rejecting as absurd the
accounts of his great age, we cannot assent to such an abridgement of his life
as Pray has made, in order to accommodate his notion of an undivided and
hereditary monarchy. Assuming that he must have been a minor when his father
died, and forgetting that, if his uncles had occupied the sovereign authority
merely as guardians, they would have been bound to resign it when Attila
arrived at manhood, and that he was not of a character to live until twenty-six
years of age, if unjustly excluded, without making any attempt to possess
himself of his hereditary rights, he assigns twenty years to him, as the
maximum of his age in 428, when his father died, and twenty-six when he
succeeded Rhuas in 434. But he has entirely overlooked a circumstance which
shows the inconsistency of this calculation; which is, that, if Attila by
the Hunnish laws could not have reigned under the age of twenty-one,
his son could not have done so; yet in 448 Priscus, having been at the court of
Attila, relates the elevation of the eldest son of Attila and Creca by
his father’s directions to the throne of the Acatzires and other
nations near the Euxine. If barely twenty-one in 448 he must have been born in
427, and Attila must have been married to Creca at least as early as
426, two years before the death of Mundiuc, at which period according
to Pray’s calculation he could have been but eighteen years old; and
it would not be easy to show that the Hunnish monarch was likely to
establish his son by marriage to that woman who amongst his numerous wives was
to give heirs to the throne, while it was still deemed necessary to hold him in
tutelage.
That Attila must
have been married to Creca before the year 427 is all that we can
ascertain; if barely twenty-one at that time, he must have been born as early
as 406, and would have been twenty-eight when he succeeded Rhuas, but it is
most likely that he was older. Creca was perhaps his first wife, and
her children on that account heirs to the throne, and it is most likely that he
was raised to the rank of a petty king during the life of his father. The old
Scandinavian legends, concerning which more will be said hereafter, speak much
of his residence at the court of Gundioc or Giuka king of
Burgundy, (calling Attila by the name of Sigurd) and of his intimacy with Gundaker or
Gunnar the Burgundian prince. In all these accounts he is described as the
greatest warrior of his age. It is very probable that Attila was employed in
the first subjugation of the Burgundians, and, while they remained in vassalage
under the Huns, the young prince of Burgundy must, in the natural course of
things, have served under Attila in his campaigns against the petty chieftains
of the neighbouring countries.
In consequence of
the death of Rhuas, by a decree of the senate which was approved by the emperor
Theodosius, Plinthas was dispatched to the court of Attila without
Dionysius, and at his special request it was decreed, that Epigenes, who
had served the office of quaestor, a man much considered on account of his
learning, should accompany him. They proceeded to Margus a town
of Moesian Illyria near the Danube, opposite the fortress Constantia
which was on the northern bank, whither the two Hunnish kings had
resorted. Attila and Bleda advanced without the walls on horseback, not
choosing to receive the Roman embassy on foot.
The Roman
ambassadors, consulting their dignity, mounted their horses also, that they
might be on equal terms with the Huns; but, notwithstanding their momentary
exaltation, they proceeded immediately to sign a most disgraceful treaty, which
was ratified by the oaths of either party, according to the customary
ceremonials of their respective countries.
The Romans bound
themselves to send back to the Huns all those who, at however distant a period,
had fled from their dominion and taken refuge under Roman protection, and also
all Roman prisoners who had escaped from captivity without paying ransom, and in
default of the restoration of any such prisoner, eight pieces of gold were to
be given for each head to their former captors. They further promised to give
no assistance to any barbarian nation, that should wage war against the Huns.
It was agreed that trade should be carried on between the two powers on equal
terms, and that peace should continue between them so long as the Romans failed
not to pay seven hundred pounds weight of gold annually to the Huns, the
tribute exacted until that time having been no more than three hundred and
fifty pounds. Thereupon the fugitives were actually given up, amongst whom were
two youths of the blood royal, Mama and Atakam, who were immediately
crucified in Carsus a fortress of Thrace, as a punishment for their
flight.
In this year the
Roman princess Honoria, having disgraced herself by an illicit connection with
her chamberlain Eugenius, and her pregnancy having been detected, was expelled
from the palace at Ravenna, and sent by her mother Placidia to
Theodosius at Constantinople, where she was placed under the superintendence of
his sister Pulcheria, who lived under a religious vow of celibacy, to
which she adhered even when, after the death of her brother, she espoused Marcian as
a support to the throne, but excluded him from conjugal rights. The princess,
not less ambitious than devoted to pleasure, secretly excited Attila against
the Western empire by the tender of her hand. He does not appear to have
accepted the proposal at the time, and the offer was perhaps repeated at a
later period, when it suited his plans to demand her in marriage. Having
concluded peace on such advantageous terms with the Romans, Attila with his
brother Bleda marched against some tribes of Scythians, who had either not yet
submitted to the authority or had presumed to shake off the yoke of the Huns,
and they immediately attacked the Sorosgi in the east of Europe. This
expedition was undoubtedly attended with the success that usually crowned the
arms of Attila, but the particulars of it have perished with the lost work of
Priscus. Having reduced his Scythian adversaries, he turned his thoughts to
avenge the overthrow of his uncle by the Burgundians, and in 436 he vanquished
them with great slaughter and the loss of their sovereign.
In the year 437 the
Romans, undoubtedly through the influence of Aetius, obtained the assistance of
a body of Hunnish auxiliaries, who were conducted by the Roman
general Litorius against the Visigoths then laying siege to Narbonne.
The two armies were drawn up in line against each other, and showed the most
determined countenance, and it seemed as if the fortunes of Theodoric must
depend upon the issue of that day, but the collision of these formidable armies
was suspended by negotiation, the Goths and the Huns shook hands upon the field
of battle, and Attila was appeased by the concessions of the Visigoths. What
advantages he obtained by this bloodless victory and the dereliction of the
Roman interests, we are not informed by Jornandes who relates the
circumstance, but he styles Attila at this period the sole ruler of almost the
whole Scythian nation throughout the world, and of marvellous celebrity amongst
all nations, a statement which very ill accords with the suggestions of Pray,
who makes him a novice just emerged from the tutelage of his uncles.
Two years after
however Litorius appeared again in the field against Theodoric at the
head of an army of Huns, who seem to have been subsidized by the Romans. The
Huns fought with their usual valour, and the victory was for a while doubtful,
but the unparalleled rashness and imprudence of Litorius rendered the
exertions of his troops unavailing. He was taken by the Goths, and led
ignominiously through the streets of Narbonne; the Hunnish auxiliaries
were completely routed, and we do not hear of their ever again having acted in
concert with the Romans. From this time we have no account of any proceedings
of the Huns in Gaul, till the year of the great battle of Châlons, and the
attention of Attila appears to have been principally directed against the
Eastern empire.
It is exceedingly
difficult to adjust the dates and particulars of the several events that are
mentioned by different writers. The capture of Margus and Viminacium,
which seems to have been the first act of hostility against Theodosius, has
been referred by Belius to the year 434, immediately after the
reduction of the Sorosgi, but it is not credible that Margus should
have been captured by the Huns, immediately after the peace concluded there. On
the contrary, the account of Priscus makes it evident that those events
directly preceded a more important attack on the dominions of Theodosius, and
they are clearly referable to the year 439, following immediately the disaster
of Litorius in Gaul. During the security of a great annual fair in
the neighbourhood of the Danube, the Hunnish army fell unexpectedly
on the Roman, seized on the fortress which protected them, and slew a great
number of their people. Remonstrances were made concerning this flagrant breach
of faith, but the Huns replied, that they were by no means the aggressors,
because the bishop of Margus had entered their territory, and
pillaged the royal domain; and that, unless he was immediately delivered into
their hands, together with all the fugitives whom the Romans were bound by
treaty to give up, they would prosecute the war with greater severity. The
Romans denied the truth of their complaint, but the Huns, confident in their
assertion, declined entering into proofs of their accusation, and, having
crossed the Danube, carried war and devastation into the forts and cities of
their enemies, and, amongst others of less importance, they captured Viminacium,
a Mysian city in Illyria. So fallen was the spirit and vigour of the
Roman empire, that, notwithstanding the alleged innocence of the bishop
of Margus, it began to be pretty loudly suggested that he ought rather to
be delivered up to the vengeance of the barbarians, than the whole territory of
the empire exposed to their atrocities. The bishop, aware of his perilous
situation, secretly passed over to the enemy, and offered to deliver up the
town, if the Scythian princes would enter into terms with him. They promised
him every possible advantage, if he would make good his proposal, pledging
their hands and confirming the agreement by oaths; whereupon the bishop
returned into the Roman territory with a great force of Huns, and having placed
them opposite the bank of the river in ambush, in the night time he arose at
the appointed signal, and delivered up the town to its enemies. Margus having
been thus taken and sacked by the Huns, they became daily more formidable, and
waxed in strength and insolence.
In the following
year (441) Attila collected an army consisting specially of his own Huns, and
wrote to the emperor Theodosius concerning the fugitives in the Roman territory
and the tribute which had been withheld from him on occasion of the war,
demanding that they should be instantly delivered up, and ambassadors sent to
arrange with him concerning the payments to be made in future; and he added
that if they made any delay or warlike preparations, he should not be able to
restrain the impetuosity of his people. Theodosius showed no disposition to
submit; he peremptorily refused to yield up the refugees, and answered that he
would abide the event of warfare, but that he would nevertheless send
ambassadors to reconcile their differences, if possible. Thereupon Senator, a
man of consular dignity, was sent by the emperor to treat with Attila; he did
not however venture to traverse the territory of the Huns even under the
protection of the character of an ambassador, but sailed across the Euxine
to Odessus, the modern Odessa, situated near Oczakow on its
northern extremity, where the general Theodulus, who had been dispatched
on a like mission, was at that time abiding, without having succeeded in
obtaining an audience. In what quarter Attila was then stationed, is not
recorded, but he had probably advanced with his army, before the negotiator
reached his destination; for on the receipt of the answer of Theodosius, being
greatly incensed, he made an immediate and sanguinary irruption into the Roman
dependencies, and, having taken several fortresses, he overwhelmed Ratiaria,
a city of great magnitude and very populous, which stood near the site of Artzar,
a little below Vidin on the Danube. He was accompanied by his brother on this
inroad, and they laid waste a great part of Illyria, demolishing Naissus,
(Nissa) Singidunum, (Belgrade) and other flourishing towns. Seven years
after, the sophist Priscus on his embassy to the court of Attila, passed by the
desolated site of Naissus, and saw the ruins of that exterminated town,
and the country strewed with the bones of its inhabitants.
The succeeding
campaign was ushered in by the appearance of a comet of great magnitude, which
added to the terror of the Hunnish arms, and a fatal pestilence raged
throughout Europe. The brothers renewed the ravage of Illyria, and stretched
their victorious course to the extreme shores of Thrace. In this expedition
only we hear of Persians serving under Attila together with Saracens and Isaurians,
but it is certain that no part of Persia was reduced under his dominion, though
the Bactrian king of the Caucasean Paropamisus is said to have
been amongst his military vassals.
Arnegisclus was
entrusted by Theodosius with a great army to stop the progress of the invader,
but he was completely routed on the shore of the Chersonese; the enemy
approached within twenty miles of Constantinople, and almost all the cities of
Thrace, except Adrianople and Heraclea, submitted to the conqueror. The army,
which was quartered in Sicily for the protection of the eastern provinces, was
hastily recalled for the defence of Constantinople, and Aspar and Anatolius,
masters of the forces, were sent to negotiate with the invaders, whose progress
they had small hope of arresting in the field of battle. A treaty or
rather a truce for a year was concluded with the Huns by Anatolius,
according to which the Romans consented to give up the fugitives, to pay 6000
pounds weight of gold for the arrears of tribute, and the future tribute was
assessed at 2100 pounds of gold; twelve pieces of gold were to be the ransom of
every Roman prisoner who had escaped from his chains, and on default of payment
he was to be sent back to captivity. The Romans were also compelled to
pledge themselves to admit no refugees from the dominions of the Huns
within the limits of the empire.
The ambassadors of
Theodosius, too haughty to acknowledge the grievous necessity to which they
were reduced, of accepting whatever terms the conqueror might think fit to
impose, pretended to make all these concessions willingly; but, through
excessive dread of their adversaries, peace upon any conditions
was their paramount object, and it was needful to submit to the imposition of
such a heavy tribute, though the wealth not only of individuals, but of the
public treasury, had been dissipated in unseasonable shows, in reprehensible
canvassing for dignities, in luxurious and immoderate expenditure, which would
not only have been misbecoming a prudent government in the most prosperous
affluence, but was especially unfitting for those
degenerate Romans, who, having neglected the discipline of war, had
been tributary not only to the Huns, but to every barbarian that pressed upon
the several frontiers of the empire.
The emperor levied
with the greatest rigor the taxes and assessments which were necessary to
furnish the stipulated tribute to the Huns, and those even whose lands, on
account of the destructive inroads of the barbarians, had been for a while
discharged from the payment of taxes, either by a judicial decision, or by
imperial indulgence, were compelled to contribute. The senators paid into the
treasury the gold which was required from them beyond their means, and their
eminent situation was the cause of ruin to many of them; for those, who were
appointed by the emperor to levy the rate, exacted it with insolence, so that
many persons, who had been in affluent circumstances, were forced to sell their
furniture and the trinkets and apparel of the women. So grievous was the
calamity of this peace to the Romans, that many hanged themselves in despair,
or perished by voluntary starvation. The treasury being immediately emptied,
the gold and the fugitives were sent to the Huns, Scottas having
arrived at Constantinople from the court of Attila to receive them. Many
however of the fugitives, who would not surrender to be delivered up to their
inexorable countrymen, from whose hands they would have suffered a cruel and
lingering death, were slain by the Romans to propitiate the enemy; and amongst
those were some of the blood royal of Scythia, who, refusing to serve under
Attila, had fled to the Romans.
Attila was not
however contented with these severe exactions, but proceeded to summon
the Azimunthians to surrender the captives they had taken from the
Huns and their allies, and the Roman refugees whom they harboured, as well as
those whom they had retaken from them. Azimus was a fortress of great
strength, not for from the Illyrian frontier, but appertaining to Thrace. The
inhabitants of this formidable post had not only resisted the attacks of the
Huns within their walls, so that no hopes were entertained of reducing them,
but had successfully sallied out against the invaders, and discomfited in many
reencounters the numerous forces and most expert commanders of the barbarians.
Their scouts traversed the country in every direction, and brought them sure
intelligence of every movement of the enemy; and, whenever the Azimunthians received
information that they were returning from an inroad laden with the plunder of
the Romans, they concerted measures for intercepting their passage, and falling
unexpectedly upon them, though few in number, by the most resolute and
enterprising valour, aided by a perfect knowledge of the intricacies of the
country, they were usually successful, and not only slaughtered many of the
Huns, but rescued the Roman prisoners and gave shelter to the deserters from
the pagans.
Attila therefore
declared that he would not withdraw his army, nor consider the conditions of
the treaty fulfilled, until the Azimunthians should have dismissed
all their captives, and delivered up to him the Romans who were in the fort, or
paid the stipulated ransom.
Neither Anatolius by
negotiation, nor Theodulus by the array of the army which was
entrusted to him for the protection of Thrace, could divert Attila from this
determination, for he was enhardened by success, and ready in a moment to
recommence his operations, while they were dejected and discouraged by the
recent disaster.
Letters were
therefore sent to Azimus, requiring them to liberate their captives, and
to send back the Romans who had been rescued, or twelve pieces of gold in lieu
of each of them. The Azimunthians replied that they had suffered the
Romans, who had fled to their protection, to depart at their pleasure, but that
all the Scythian captives had been slain; excepting two whom they retained,
because the Huns, after having for a while besieged their fortress, had placed
themselves in ambush, and carried off some children who were tending the flocks
at a short distance from the walls, and that, unless those were restored, they
would not give up the captives they had made in war.
Enquiries were
instituted concerning these children, but they were not forthcoming, and,
the Hunnish kings having made oath that they had them not, the Azimunthians set
free their captives, and swore likewise that the Romans had departed from
amongst them; but they swore falsely, the Romans being still in the fortress,
while they held themselves absolved from the guilt of perjury by the
countervailing merit of having saved their countrymen. It appears from this
account, which is detailed by Priscus, that the Azimunthians were a
hardy race in possession of an impregnable mountain hold, where they rendered a
very qualified allegiance to the emperor, and probably closed their gates
against his tax-gatherers.
About this period,
probably in the campaign of 442, Attila asserted that he had possessed himself
of the ancient iron sword, which from the earliest recorded time had been the
God of the Scythians. A herdsman, tracking the blood of a heifer which had been
wounded in the leg, was said to have discovered the mysterious blade standing
erect in the sod, as if he had been flung forth from heaven, and carried it to
Attila, who received it as a fresh revelation of the sword of Ares or Areimanius which
had been worshipped by the ancient Scythian kings, but had long disappeared
from earth. He accepted it as a sacred badge and evidence that the power of the
spirit of war was committed to him, and a certain presage of the approaching
universality of his dominion.
The prevailing
expectation of the advent of the Messiah, mankind being greatly ignorant of the
true character of Him who was to come, had encouraged Octavius Caesar to assume
the title of Augustus, and pretend to divine honors; and it was perhaps
not merely the flattery of his courtiers, but the real opinion of those who
expected a divine revelation at that period, that represented him as a present
God.
The era of Attila
was marked by a very general expectation of the revelation of Antichrist. It
has been already mentioned that it was prophesied to Aetius in his youth that
he was to be some great one; by which expression is meant a divine incarnation.
Symmachus in
his panegyric of Gratian amongst his orations discovered and edited by Maius,
stated about sixty-five years before that he heard the prophets of the Gentiles
were whispering, that the man was already born, to whom it was necessary that
the whole world should submit; that he believed the presage, and acknowledged
the oracles of the enemy.
There seems to
have been a strong opinion entertained in Italy that the fortunes of Rome could
only be upheld by making her the head of the barbarous nations and of all
paganism, and in this spirit Symmachus had pleaded before Valentinian in 384
against Christianity, and, as his oration is styled, on behalf of his sacred
country. The great object of this party in Rome was to give a Roman ruler to
the Gentiles, instead of receiving an emperor from them. With this view the
traitor Stilicho, a nominal Christian, educated his son in paganism and the
most bitter animosity against the Christians.
When Radagais invaded
Italy, the people looked to Stilicho for salvation, and it was carried by
acclamation in Rome, that the neglected rites of their ancient Deities must be
immediately renewed. After Honorius had cut short the traitor, dispersed his
barbarian satellites, and driven into banishment his panegyrist the poet
Claudian, who was a decided pagan, and probably died at the court of some
heathen king, Aetius became the head of this party, with like views and deeper
villainy. To him it had been prophesied that he was the great one whom the
nations were expecting. His son Carpileo was sent to be educated
amongst the heathens; he had, by long residence both at the Gothic court of
Alaric and amongst the Huns of Attila, familiarized himself with all the
leading characters of Europe.
The pious and
eloquent Prudentius was too remote from these odious machinations to
have suspected the sincerity of Stilicho, and saw in him only the saviour of
the empire and defender of Christianity; and it is probable that with like
hypocrisy Aetius, whose wife was certainly a Christian, imposed on the
credulity of Leo, who appears to have highly regarded him; which is the least
creditable circumstance known concerning that pontiff. Exerting his great
military talents no further than suited his hidden views, and balancing all the
powers of Europe with the nicest artifice, that no one might obtain the
universal dominion which he expected ultimately to snatch from them all, he
proceeded steadily in his object, till Valentinian cut him short at the moment
when the death of Attila had probably determined him to declare himself.
The minds of all
men both in the Roman empire, and amongst the heathen nations of Europe, being
thus strongly tinctured with the expectation of the revelation of a predestined
and distinguished person, who was to establish a new and prevailing theocracy,
the importance of assuming that character to himself could not escape the
penetration of Attila; and it is not impossible, that, educated as he was in
the cradle of superstition, he may have believed that the great destinies to
which he pretended were really awaiting him. We learn from Jordanes, who quotes
the authority of Priscus, that he acquired very great influence by the
acquisition and production of the venerated sword. The title which he assumed
is said to have been, Attila, grandson or rather descendant of the great Nembroth or Nimrod,
nurtured in Engaddi, by the grace of God king of Huns, Goths, Danes, and
Medes, the dread of the world. He is represented on an old medallion with teraphim or
a head on his breast
We know from
the Hamartagenia of Prudentius that Nimrod with a
snaky-haired head was the object of adoration of the heretical followers
of Marcion, and the same head was the palladium set up by Antiochus
Epiphanes over the gates of Antioch, though it has been called the visage of
Charon. The memory of Nimrod was certainly regarded with mystic
veneration by many, and by asserting himself to be the heir of that mighty
hunter before the Lord, he vindicated to himself at least the whole Babylonian
kingdom.
The singular
assertion in his style that he was nurtured in Engaddi, where he certainly
never had been, will be more easily understood on reference to the twelfth
chapter of Revelation concerning the woman clothed with the sun, who was to
bring forth in the wilderness, “where she hath a place prepared of God”, a man-child,
who was to contend with the dragon having seven heads and ten horns, and rule
all nations with a rod of iron.
This prophecy was
at that time understood universally by the sincere Christians to refer to the
birth of Constantine who was to overthrow the paganism of the city on the seven
hills, and it is still so explained: but it is evident that the heathens must
have looked upon it in a different light, and have regarded it as a foretelling
of the birth of that great one, who should master the temporal power of Rome.
The assertion therefore that he was nurtured in Engaddi, is a claim to be
looked upon as that man-child who was to be brought forth in a place prepared
of God in the wilderness. Engaddi means a place of palms and vines in
the desert; it was hard by Zoar, the city of refuge, which was saved in
the vale of Siddim or demons, when the rest were destroyed
by fire and brimstone from the Lord in heaven, and might therefore be
especially called a place prepared of God in the wilderness, like the garden of
Amalthea, in which Bacchus was fabled to have been brought up. That such a
title was either actually assumed by Attila, or given to him by those who
favoured his pretensions, may be established by the total ignorance of the
historians who have recorded it of its meaning, and the extraordinary fact
being stated by them without any comment Engaddi was also the seat of
the Essenian cenobites, that remnant of the inhabitants of Sodom, who
before the advent of our Savior had set the example of the most
profligate abominations under the mask of holiness and austerity; and a fitter
cradle could hardly have been devised for an Anti-christian adventurer.
He was certainly
not king over the Medes, but the title was probably assumed when he had been on
the point of undertaking an expedition to reduce them, which Priscus
ascertained to have been his intention, and would probably have been carried
into execution, if his life had been prolonged. Notwithstanding the vague
accounts of early Danish history, which have been put together from
Scandinavian legends, the name of Danes appears to have been scarcely known
before this period.
Servius, whose
commentary on Virgil had perhaps been then written a little more than twenty
years, probably makes the first mention of the name, saying that the Dahae,
a people of Scythia adjoining to Persia on the north, were called also
Dani. Priscuwrites concerning the same passage, that the Dahae and
Dacians were the same people. Jornandes a century after the time of
Attila, first names the Danes in Denmark, stating them to be a distinguished
race of superior stature amongst the Codani, with whose name that of the
south of the Baltic, called Sinus Codanus, is identical.
Procopius gives an
account of the migration of the Herulians from the vicinity of the
Danube through the tribes of the Danes into Thule, the modern Thylemark.
Nicolas Olaus says that he found it stated in an old Hungarian
chronicle that the Danes formerly inhabited the region of Hungarian Dacia, and
betook themselves to the maritime parts of the north of Europe through fear of
the Huns. If the Dacians who had migrated northwards bore at that time the name
of Danes on the coast of the Baltic, they were not of sufficient importance in
themselves to have merited such a particular mention in the title of the great
monarch, unless because he actually occupied Dacia.
It is however
exceedingly probable that the particular mention of Danes, had reference to the
prevailing opinion that Antichrist was to be of the tribe of Dan, founded upon
the prophecy of Jacob in the 49th chapter of Genesis, “Dan shall be a serpent
by the way, an adder in the path, that bites the horse’s heels, so that his
rider shall fall backward. I have waited for thy salvation, O Lord”, which last
words seem to imply that the posterity of Dan would not await it, as Jacob had
done, and from the circumstance of the tribe of Dan not being sealed in Revelation.
We are informed by
several writers that in the reign of Attila, a certain mysterious person, who
is called a second Moses in Crete, that is coming in the spirit of Moses,
deceived the Jews in that island, pledging himself to lead them back through
the sea with dry feet to the land of promise. Those who linked themselves
together by the hair, and sprang off a cliff into the sea at his suggestion,
all perished; a few were converted to Christianity and escaped. The Rabbis
and rabbinists assure us that there cannot be a second Moses, coming
in the power of Dan, unless his soul be an emanation of Cain the
fratricide. Postel states that the Moses in Crete was such an one as
Antichrist. Werner Rolewink in his fasciculus temporum makes the second
Moses synchronize with Patric’s voyage to Ireland.
Father Colgan, in
his Trias thaumaturge, says that the magic wand, which was
transmitted by Adam and Nimrod to Moses, passed into the hands of
Jesus Christ, and from him was transmitted to Patric; who spent forty days
and forty nights in a mountain, fasting and conversing with God, saw God in a
burning bush, and died at the same age as Moses, (viz. 120) and his eye was not
dim, nor his natural strength abated; and from these and other coincidences, he
is called the second Moses.
St. Patric is
also said to have summoned all the serpents and venomous creatures to the top
of a mountain over the sea and bade them jump down, and they were all
drowned. It cannot be overlooked on reading the several passages relating
to the second Moses, that the story appears to have a more intimate connection
with the affairs of Attila, than is stated on the face of any one of the
extracts; for the writers proceed immediately from the narration of Attila’s
acts to this strange account, and again from it to Attila’s invasion of
Gaul. Whether such a man as Patric actually existed, and
was sent on a secret mission by Attila to prepare the way for himself as
Antichrist, as we read in the Scandinavian sagas that Attila sent Herburt on
a mission to king Arthur in Great Britain, or whether Patric was
merely a fictitious name used by those in Ireland, who looked to the coming of
Attila as Antichrist, to represent his power and his kingdom, it may be
difficult to determine; but the Cretan tale seems to be connected with the
legend of St. Patric, and that legend to have reference to the expectation
that Attila would establish an universal antichristian dominion. When we
are told that a person deceived the Jews with the expectation of leading them
back to the land of promise, coming as a second Moses, and such an one as
Antichrist, that no second Moses could come in the power of Dan, except an
emanation from the soul of Cain the fratricide; that Attila affected
particularly the title of king of the Danes, and that he did murder his brother
like Cain, and attempt to establish an antichristian universal empire, we have
some reason to conclude that Attila did pretend to come in the power of Dan,
and in the spirit of Moses as a lawgiver.
Having thus
arrayed himself with superhuman pretensions, as predestined to overthrow that
empire, which, in compliance with the predictions of the Sibyl, Romulus was
said to have consecrated with the blood of Remus, Attila proceeded soon after
to murder his brother Bleda. The exact mode of his death is not known; he is
said to have been slain and cast into the Danube; according to one account a
dispute arose concerning the name to be given to the new town of Sicambria,
which either brother wished to call after his own, and the modern Buda is said
to be a version of the name Bleda. The tradition of the twelve birds seen by
Romulus and the six seen by Remus, bears a strong appearance of having been
founded on some true prophecy concerning the duration of the ever memorable
Roman empire, and it is very remarkable that Attila murdered his brother Bleda,
and may be supposed to have consecrated by his blood the new city of Sicambria,
which he intended to make the seat of a new empire to supersede that of Rome,
exactly twelve centuries after the alleged revelation of the twelve birds to
Romulus; 755 being the years of Rome before Christ, and 445 after Christ, the
date of the murder of Bleda, making exactly twelve centuries
from his death to that of Remus. If we add six single years
for the six birds of Remus, it brings us to the year 452 on which Attila,
master of nearly all Italy, was expected to enter Rome; if instead of six
single years we add six lustra or periods of five years by which the Romans
were wont to number the lapse of time, it brings us precisely to the year 476
in which the Roman empire was finally extinguished by Odoacer.
It is not easy to
believe that such wonderful coincidences are accidental, especially when we
recollect that this is not a subsequent interpretation of the augury, built
upon the events that actually took place, but it had been thus explained in the
oldest times; and, as the period drew near, the most learned men, both heathen
and Christian, were looking for its accomplishment, and it is not unlikely that
Attila used for his ensign a vulture bearing a golden crown with reference to
the birds of Romulus. Varro, as cited by Censorinus, had written that
he had heard Vettius a distinguished augur and a man of great genius
and learning say, that if the facts related by historians concerning the
foundation of the city by Romulus and the twelve vultures were true, the Roman
state would endure twelve hundred years, since it had already survived
the 120th year.
The pagan poet
Claudian who was contemporary with and involved in the ruin of Stilicho,
had stated that the people dreading the invasion of the Goths counted the years
numbered by the twelve vultures, and from the expiration of the twelfth century
anticipated the overthrow of Rome. Sidonius Apollinaris bishop of
Clermont, who wrote a few years after the death of Attila alluded in two
passages to the fate prognosticated to Rome by the twelve vultures. It is
therefore quite certain that Attila must have been aware of this prediction,
and of the interpretation which was given to it by Christians and pagans at this
period, and had been handed down from remote antiquity; and it is as certain
that such a circumstance must have had great weight with a man attempting to
establish an empire which was to supersede that of Rome, and to be built in
like manner upon the worship of the sword-god Mars; and it can scarcely be
doubted that this prediction and a consideration of the received history of
Romulus had its share in exciting him to murder his brother Bleda.
Aiming at the
establishment of universal dominion by the influence of superstition and
religious awe, as well as by the force of arms, he could no more have
overlooked the fact, that the twelve centuries of Romulus were actually
expiring in the year when he followed his fratricidal example, than it had
escaped the flatterers of Augustus that in his time the seventy weeks of Daniel
were expiring amidst the intense expectation of the nations.
The same year that
witnessed the elevation of Attila to the sole power amongst the Huns by the
removal of his brother, brought a fresh attack upon the Eastern empire, though
neither the causes which led to the renewal of hostilities, nor the events of
the campaign have been handed down to posterity. After a pause of one year,
probably obtained by fresh concessions from Theodosius, the war was renewed on
a greater scale than ever in 447.
The forces of the
Western empire afforded no assistance to their Eastern brethren, and not less
than seventy cities were taken and ravaged by the Huns. It was a fierce
contest, and greater than the former wars of the Huns; the castles and towns of
a large tract of Europe were levelled to the ground. Arnegisclus made
a memorable stand against Attila and fought valiantly, but fell in the battle,
and the total discomfiture of his army left the whole of Thrace at the mercy of
the conqueror. In this campaign the celebrated Arderic king of
the Gepidae distinguished himself under Attila, who was supported by
the Ostrogoths and a portion of the Alans, and various other nations serving
under their respective kings.
The whole extent
south of the Danube, from Illyria to the Black Sea, was ravaged by the Huns,
whose army swept a breadth of five days journey as they advanced. Jordanes says
that Arnegisclus fell at Marcianopolis, close to Varna near the
shores of the Black sea. Marcellinus says the conflict took place on the banks
of the Utus, which flows into the Danube a little to the east of Sophia, a
place very far in the rear of Attila’s advanced position, which Marcellinus
himself states to have been at Thermopolis, supposed to mean Thermopylae. The
probability is therefore, that the battle was fought near Marcianopolis.
If it was fought near the Utus, Attila must have pursued his uninterrupted
course afterwards through Macedonia and Thessaly. Theodosius in this dilemma
attempted to tamper with the kings under Attila, and excited against him the
princes of the Acatzires on the northern side of the Euxine. Attila
is said to have been alarmed at this intelligence, and to have been fearful
that the territory which he had ravaged to the south of the river, would be
unable to support his immense army, and was induced by prudential motives to
listen to the negotiators of Theodosius.
The immediate
danger to the empire was averted by the conclusion of a truce, and Attila now
turned his arms against the Acatzires, a Hunnish race dwelling
on the borders of the Black sea, who were governed by a number of petty kings.
Theodosius had offered them bribes, to induce them to withdraw from
confederation with Attila. The messenger however, who was charged with the
imperial presents, did not distribute them according to the estimated rank of
the several princes, so that Curidach who was the senior king,
received only the second present. Incensed at this, and considering himself to
have been slighted and deprived of his due, he called in the aid of Attila
against the other princes of the Acatzires. Attila without loss of time,
sent a considerable force against them, slew some, and reduced the rest to
subjection. He then invited Curidach to partake in the fruits of the
victory, but he, suspecting some design against his person, and adroitly
adapting his flattery to the pretensions which Attila had lately advanced, on
the production of the divine sword, made answer, that it was a formidable thing
for a man to come into the presence of a God; for if no one could steadfastly
behold the face of the sun, how should he without injury look upon the greatest
of divinities. By these means, Curidach retained his sovereignty,
while the power of the rest was yielded up to the Hun.
Attila now sent
ambassadors to Constantinople, to redemand the fugitives from his territory. He
seems to have been at all times particularly irritable concerning those who
withdrew themselves from subjection to his authority by flight to the
Christians, and the certainty of their execution, if recaptured, rendered their
protectors very unwilling to surrender them.
On this occasion
his legates were received with great courtesy, and loaded with presents, but
they were dismissed with assurances that there were no refugees at
Constantinople. Four successive embassies were dispatched to Theodosius, and
enriched by the liberality of the Romans; for Attila, aware of the gifts by
which his ambassadors were conciliated through fear of an abrupt infringement
of the truce, whenever he wished to confer a benefit upon any of his favourites
or dependants, found some excuse for sending them on a mission to enrich
themselves.
The Romans obeyed
him as their lord and master, and submitted to all his demands, not only
dreading the renewal of hostilities by the Huns, but harassed by the warlike
preparations of the Parthians, the maritime attacks of the Vandals in the
Mediterranean, the inroads of the Isauri, and the repeated incursions of
the Saracens who laid waste the eastern parts of the empire. They humbled
themselves therefore towards Attila, and temporized with him, while they were
preparing to make head against their other enemies, and levied troops, and made
choice of generals to oppose them.
In the following
year (AD 448) Edécon, who is called a Scythian, a man highly
distinguished by his military exploits, was sent to Constantinople by Attila,
together with Orestes, who was of Roman extraction, dwelling in Paeonia near
the Savus, which had been ceded to Attila by a treaty concluded with
Aetius the commander of the forces of the Western empire.
Edécon proceeded
to the imperial palace, and delivered the letters of Attila, in which he
reiterated his complaints touching the fugitives, and threatened that he would
have recourse to arms again, unless they were delivered up to him and the
Romans desisted from ploughing the lands which he had lately wrested from them,
or at least overrun. The territory which he claimed extended on the southern
bank of the Danube, from Paeonia to the Thracian Novae, with a breadth of five
days journey for an active man; and he forbad the Illyrian fair being held as
heretofore on the banks of the Danube, but in Naissus which he had
utterly destroyed, and now appointed to be the boundary between his states and
the Romans. He demanded that the most distinguished men of consular dignity
should be sent to his court to arrange all matters in dispute, and threatened,
that if they should delay, he would advance to Sardica.
The letter having
been read, Edécon delivered the message of his sovereign through the
interpretation of Bigilas, and withdrew with him through another quarter
of the royal palace, to visit Chrysaphius the shield-bearer of the
emperor, who had then much influence. Edécon expressed great admiration at the
splendour of the imperial residence, and, when they reached the apartment
of Chrysaphius, Bigilas interpreted to him the words in which
the Scythian had stated that he admired the magnificence and envied the wealth
of the Romans. The eunuch seized this opportunity to tamper with the fidelity
of the barbarian, and told him that he should enjoy like opulence and dwell
under ceilings of gold, if he would exchange the party of the Scythians for
that of the Romans. Edécon replied that it was not lawful for the servant of
another master to do this without the permission of his lord; whereupon the
insidious eunuch asked him if he had free access to Attila, and influence in
the Hunnish court. Edécon replied that he was a confidential
attendant, and took his turn with other chosen and distinguished individuals to
watch in arms over his safety upon the days allotted to him. Thereupon Chrysaphius said,
that if he would pledge himself to the Romans, he would promise him great
advantages; but that leisure was necessary to make arrangements, for which
purpose he proposed to him to return to supper without Orestes and the rest of
the embassy.
Edécon having
undertaken to do so, and having returned according to agreement, Bigilas acting
as interpreter between them, they pledged their right hands and swore, the one
that he would speak of things the most advantageous to Edécon, the other that
he would not reveal their discourse, whether he might assent to the proposals
or not. The eunuch, satisfied with this promise, proceeded to assure the
Scythian that if on his return he would murder Attila and make his escape to
the Romans he should enjoy great wealth and luxury. Edécon assented, but stated
that money would be necessary to distribute amongst the soldiers under him,
that they might assist him without reluctance, for which purpose he required
fifty pounds weight of gold.
Chrysaphius would
have disbursed the money immediately, but Edécon represented the necessity of
his returning first to render an account of his embassy, and of his being
accompanied by Bigilas who might bring Attila’s answer concerning the
refugees, and at the same time a communication from himself to state when and
how the gold might be remitted to him; for that Attila would question him
closely according to his custom, what gifts and how much money he had obtained
from the Romans; nor should he be able to conceal the truth easily, on account
of the numbers who were with him. Chrysaphius assented to this, and
when his guest had withdrawn, he proceeded to disclose the treacherous scheme
to the emperor, who immediately sent for Martialius, the master or warden
of the palace, to whom by virtue of his office all the counsels of the emperor
were necessarily confided, as he had the superintendence of the
letter-carriers, the interpreters, and the soldiers who kept guard in the
palace.
It seemed good to
the emperor and these his advisers to send Maximin with Bigilas under
the existing circumstances, to the court of Attila: that Bigilas in
the character of interpreter should obey the instructions he might receive from
Edécon, but that Maximin should have charge to deliver the letter of the
emperor, remaining entirely ignorant of the infamous conspiracy which was to be
carried on under the cover of his mission. Theodosius wrote in the credentials
of the ambassadors that Bigilas was the interpreter, but that Maximin
was a man of much greater distinction and very much in his confidence. He
exhorted Attila not to infringe the treaty, inasmuch as he then sent to him
seventeen refugees in addition to those who had been already delivered up, and
assured him that there were no more in his dominions. Maximin was instructed to
use his endeavours to persuade Attila not to require an ambassador of higher
rank, as it had been customary for his ancestors and the other kings of
Scythia, to receive any military or civil envoy; and suggest the expediency of
his sending Onegesius to arrange the matters which were under discussion; and
represent the impracticability of Attila’s conferring with a man of consular
dignity at Sardica which had been demolished by the Huns.
Maximin persuaded
the sophist and historian Priscus to accompany him on this expedition; and if
the eight books which he afterwards wrote had not unfortunately perished, those
extracts only being preserved which relate to the embassies, we should not have
to lament the insufficiency of our materials for some parts of the history of
Attila.
They set forth
therefore in company with the barbarians, and proceeded to Sardica,
thirteen days journey from Constantinople. Here they tarried, and thought it advisable
to invite Edécon and his companions to take their meal with them. The natives
furnished them with sheep and oxen, which they slaughtered and prepared for
their repast. During the banquet the barbarians exalted the name of Attila, and
the Greeks that of the emperor, whereupon Bigilas said that it was
not just to compare a God with a man, intimating thereby that Theodosius was
the divinity and Attila a human potentate. The guests took great offence at the
insinuation, and grew very warm on the subject, but the ambassadors exerted
themselves to change the subject and pacify them, and after the supper Maximin
presented Edécon and Orestes with silken apparel and oriental jewels. Orestes
outstand Edécon, and observed after his departure to Maximin, that he acted
well and wisely in not imitating the conduct of those about the emperor; for
some had invited to supper Edécon alone, and had loaded him with gifts; but the
ambassadors, not being aware of the circumstance to which he alluded, asked him
in what respect he had been neglected and Edécon honoured, to which he made no
reply, but withdrew.
The subject being
discussed in conversation the next day, Bigilas observed that Orestes
ought not to have expected to receive the same honours as Edécon, inasmuch as Orestes
was the follower and scribe of Attila, but Edécon was very distinguished in
warfare, and being of Hunnish blood was in higher estimation; after
which he addressed Edécon in his own language, and subsequently informed the
ambassadors, that he had told him what had been said by Orestes, and with
difficulty had allayed his anger on the subject, but the historian does not
rely implicitly on the veracity of the interpretation.
Arriving at Naissus five
days journey from the Danube, they found it demolished by the Huns, but some
sick persons were abiding in the ruins of the temples. The party sought
for a clear place to unyoke their beasts of burden, for the whole bank of the
river was strewn with the bones of those who had fallen in the war; an incident
which furnishes a horrible picture of the desolating atrocity of Hunnish warfare,
by which the whole population of a distinguished town had been exterminated,
and as yet after the lapse of several years, there had been none to bury their
remains.
On the following
day they visited Agintheus who commanded the forces in Illyria,
and had his quarters not far from Naissus, that they might deliver to him
the injunctions of the emperor, and receive from his hands five refugees who
were to make up the complement of seventeen, concerning whom he had written to
Attila, and who were to be delivered up to his relentless indignation. Agintheus,
as he was ordered, surrendered the ill-fated fugitives, softening the harshness
of the act towards them by the expression of his unavailing regret.
On the succeeding
day they continued their journey from the mountains of Naissus towards
the Danube, passing through some woody and circuitous defiles, so that those
who were unacquainted with the country and imagined they were travelling
westward, were astonished in the morning at seeing the sunrise opposite to
them, and fancied it was a prodigy portending the subversion of all established
order, till it was explained to them that on account of natural impediments,
that part of the road was necessarily turned towards the east.
From the
mountainous passes they issued into a level and woody district, where barbarian
ferrymen received the whole party into canoes which they had themselves scooped
out of solid stems, and conveyed them across the Danube. It seems that they had
travelled night and day, excepting when they halted at Sardica, at Naissus,
and after the interview with Agintheus. The boats had not been prepared
for the ambassadors, but to ferry over the river a multitude of Attila’s
people, whom they met on the way, for Attila had made a pretence of desiring to
hunt in the territories wrested from the Romans, though in fact it was a
preparation for war, which he meditated under the pretext that all the refugees
had not been delivered up to him.
Having crossed the
Danube, and proceeded about 70 stadia or a little more than eight English
miles, they were made to halt on a plain, while the attendants of Edécon
carried the news of their arrival to Attila. In the evening, while they
were at supper, two Scythians arrived at their quarters, and ordered them to
proceed to Attila, but having been requested to alight from their horses, they partook
of the meal, and on the following morning served as their conductors. About the
ninth hour of the day they reached the numerous tents of Attila, and being
about to pitch their own on a knoll, the barbarians forbad it, because those of
Attila were on the level ground.
The Romans having
therefore established themselves where they were directed, Edécon,
Orestes, Scottas, and others of the principal men, intruded themselves,
and began to make enquiries into the objects of the embassy. At first the Romans
looked at each other with surprise and gave no answer to the unbecoming
questions, but the barbarians were troublesome and urgent in the enquiries,
whereupon they were told that the message of the emperor was unto Attila, and
no other person. Scottas answered angrily that they were sent by
their leader to make this enquiry, and had not come to gratify their own
curiosity. The Romans represented that it was nowhere customary for ambassadors
without entering into the presence of the person to whom they had been sent to
be called upon to declare the objects of their mission through the intervention
of other persons; that the Scythians who had been on missions to the emperor
well knew this, and that, unless admitted into the presence, as the ambassadors
of Attila had always been, they would not communicate their instructions.
The messengers of
Attila returned to him, and soon after coming back without Edécon, declared to
the Romans all the particulars concerning which they were sent to treat by the
emperor, and ordered them, if they had nothing further to communicate, to take
their departure as speedily as possible.
The Romans were
amazed, and, being unable to conjecture through what channel the secrets of the
emperor had been divulged, thought it prudent to decline giving any answer,
unless admitted to the royal presence; whereupon they were ordered to depart
instantly. While they were preparing for the journey, Bigilas blamed
them for the answer they had given, saying that it would be better to be
detected in a falsehood, than to return without accomplishing their purpose;
and asserted that if he could have come to the sight of Attila, he should
easily have persuaded him to recede from his dispute with the Romans, having
become well acquainted with him, when he had accompanied the mission of Anatolius;
whence Edécon was also well disposed towards him; so that, under pretext of the
embassy, by speaking truth or falsehood, as occasion might require, they might
complete the arrangements touching the conspiracy against Attila, and the
transmission of the gold which Edécon had stated to be necessary, that it might
be divided amongst the satellites: but he little suspected, that he had been
betrayed, for Edécon, whether his promises, as is most probable, had been deceitful
from the first, or he had taken alarm, lest Orestes, indignant at what had
passed at Sardica, should report to Attila that he had had separate and
private conferences with the emperor and Chrysaphius, had divulged the
whole conspiracy to the Hun, both the quota of gold that had been required, and
the points concerning which the Romans had been instructed to negotiate.
The orders of
Attila had been peremptory, and although it was night, the ambassadors, hungry
and cold, were under the necessity of making ready for their departure, when a
second message from the great king enjoined them to tarry till a more
seasonable hour; and at the same time he sent them an ox and some river fish,
on which they supped and retired to rest, hoping that he might be more favourably
disposed on the morrow; but in the morning the same messengers returned,
ordering them to depart, if they had nothing else to communicate.
They prepared
therefore once more for the journey, notwithstanding the earnest suggestion
of Bigilas, that they should answer that they had other things to set
forth. The historian Priscus, through friendship to Maximin, who appeared very
much dejected at the disgraceful issue of his mission, taking with him Rusticius,
who understood the Hunnish language, for an interpreter, went
to Scottas, and promised him ample presents from Maximin, if he would
obtain for him an interview with Attila; assuring him that the subject matter
of the embassy was not only important to the two nations, but personally to his
brother Onegesius who was then absent from the court; and he adroitly added,
that he understood he had great weight with Attila, but that he should better
know how to estimate his importance, if he could prevail in this point. Scottas replied,
that he had quite as much influence as Onegesius, and would prove it; and he
mounted his horse immediately, and rode to the tent of the monarch. Priscus
returning to Maximin found him and Bigilas lying on the grass, and,
having declared what he had done, and recommended to Maximin to look out the
gifts for Scottas and consider what he should say to Attila, was much
applauded, and those amongst the retinue, who were actually starting, were
called back, and their departure was suspended till the result of the
application of Scottas should be known. While they were thus
employed, they were summoned by Scottas to the presence of Attila.
Entering they
beheld the monarch seated on a wooden throne, and guarded by a numerous circle
of barbarians. Maximin alone approaching saluted him, while the rest of the
Romans stood aloof; and, having delivered the letter of Theodosius, he said
that the emperor prayed for the health and prosperity of him and his people.
Attila answered, “May it be to the Romans, as they wish to me”, and immediately
turning his discourse to Bigilas, he called him a shameless beast, and
asked how he presumed to come before him, knowing what terms of peace had been
concluded between himself and Anatolius, and that no ambassadors should
have been sent to him before all the refugees had been delivered up. Bigilas having
replied, that there was no refugee of Scythian blood remaining in the empire,
for that all had been given up, he waxed more angry, and exclaimed with
loudness and violence, that he would crucify him, and give him for food to the
birds, if he were not scrupulous of infringing the laws concerning ambassadors
by awarding to him the just punishment of his impudence, and the rashness of
his speech; for that many refugees were still amongst the Romans, whose names he
ordered the secretaries to read from a tablet. After that had been
performed, he commanded him to depart immediately, and Eslas to
accompany him and bear a message to the Romans, that every fugitive, since the
time when Carpileo the son of Aetius had been sent to Attila as a
hostage from the Western empire, must be forthwith delivered up; inasmuch as he
would not suffer his own servants to bear arms against him, however little they
could avail for the protection of the Romans: “for”, he added, using nearly the
language of Sennacherib, “which of all the cities or fortresses that I have
thought fit to capture, has been successfully defended against me?” He further
directed them after having delivered his message concerning the fugitives, to
return and inform him whether the Romans chose to surrender them, or to await
the war which he should wage against them; but he commanded Maximin to stay for
his answer to the letter of Theodosius, and enquired for the presents of the
emperor, which were given to him. The ambassadors retired to their tents,
where Bigilas expressed his surprise at the violent demeanour of
Attila towards him, who had been formerly received with so much gentleness. The
Romans imagined that the conversation at Sardica, in which Bigilas had
called him a mortal and Theodosius a divinity, must have been related to him by
some of the guests, who were present at that banquet; but Bigilas, who had
intimate acquaintance with the Hunnish court, would not credit the
suggestion, saying that no one excepting Edécon would dare to enter into
discourse with him on such matters, and that he would undoubtedly be silent,
not merely on account of his oath, but through fear that he might be condemned
to death for having been present at, and lent himself to, secret counsels
against the life of his sovereign.
While these
matters were under discussion, Edécon returned, and, drawing Bigilas aside,
renewed the subject of the gold which he required for distribution, and, after
giving directions concerning its payment, he withdrew. Priscus, the friend of
Maximin, who was kept in ignorance of the atrocious conspiracy, having enquired
into the subject of that conversation, Bigilas who was himself
deceived by Edécon, eluded the enquiry by saying that Edécon had complained that
he was brought into trouble on account of the detention of the fugitives, and
that all of them should have been delivered up, or ambassadors of the highest
dignity sent for the purpose of pacifying Attila.
A further command
was presently issued by the monarch, that neither Bigilas nor any of
the Romans should buy any Roman captive or barbarian slave, or any horse or
other article except necessary provender, until the differences should be
adjusted; and this he did with subtlety, that Bigilas might have no
excuse for bringing the gold which was promised to Edécon; and, under pretence
of writing an answer to Theodosius, he required the Romans to await the return
home of Onegesius, that they might deliver to him the presents sent by the
emperor.
Onegesius was at
that time absent, having been sent to establish the eldest son of Attila
and Creca on the throne of the Acatares, whose reduction has
been already mentioned. Bigilas was therefore dispatched alone
with Eslas to bring back the answer concerning the refugees, but in
truth to afford him an opportunity of fetching the gold, and the rest were
detained in their tents, but after one day’s interval they were made to proceed
together with Attila towards the north of Hungary.
The ambassadors
had not travelled far in the suite of the Hunnish monarch, when their
conductors directed them to follow a different road, for Attila thought fit to
tarry in a certain hamlet, where he had determined to add his daughter Eskam to
the number of his wives. We are informed by Priscus that this marriage was
conformable to the law of the Scythians. His expression is somewhat remarkable,
and literally rendered is, “where he purposed to marry his daughter Eskam,
having indeed many wives, but espousing this one also according to Scythian
law”. Some writers have taken occasion from this passage to assert that there
was no prohibition amongst the Huns to any marriage, however repugnant to
propriety on account of relationship, and St. Jerome has made a similar
declaration, probably with no better foundation, concerning the Persians,
amongst whom incest was no more generally permitted, than polygamy was amongst
the Jews. The instances of two wives recorded in the case of Lamech, and of
Jacob, and Elkanah, are evidently particular cases departing from the
established practice, and the permission given to the kings of the Jews to
possess many wives and concubines, was the consequence of the Lord’s having
conceded to the Jews, as a punishment for their perverse entreaties, “a king
over them, that they might be like all the nations”; a king therefore having
all the privileges enjoyed by the adjoining potentates, namely that they could
do no wrong and might take any number of wives, however nearly related to them
in blood, notwithstanding the prohibition that had been given prospectively
concerning them, that they should not multiply their wives, a prohibition which
was certainly respected by the generality of the Jews.
The words of
Priscus do not imply that either polygamy or incest were lawful to all the
Huns, but that it was lawful to Attila, as it had been to Cambyses, on account
of his prerogative. The Hungarian writers, indignant at the reproaches cast on
the morals of their supposed ancestors on this occasion, have attempted to make
it appear that the lady espoused by Attila was not his child, but the daughter
of a man named Eskam, considering the undeclined name Eskam to
be a genitive case, and rendering the preceding word the daughter of instead
of his daughter. On a careful consideration of the construction of sentences in
the Greek written by Priscus and others of that period, it will be apparent
that the words cannot mean to marry the daughter of Eskam.
While Attila was
revelling with his new bride, the ambassadors were conducted onward across a
level country, and traversed several rivers in canoes or boats used by the
people who lived on their banks, similar to those in which they had crossed the
Danube. The next in size to that river were stated to have been the Drecon,
the Ugas, and Tiphesas, which last is the Teiss, but it has not
been found practicable to identify the two others. The lesser streams were
passed in boats that were carried on wagons by the barbarians through the
country which was liable to be flooded.
Millet was brought
to the Romans for food from the villages instead of wheat, and mead instead of
wine, together with a sort of beer made from barley which was called by the
natives cam. After a long and weary journey, they pitched their
tents at evening near a lake of clear water which the inhabitants of a
neighbouring hamlet were in the habit of fetching for drink.
A violent storm of
wind and rain with exceedingly vivid lightning came on immediately after they
had encamped, and not only overset their tents and laid all flat, but washed
away their provisions and furniture into the lake. The Romans were so
terrified, that they fled in various directions, floundering through the
tempest in the dark night, to avoid the same fate as their chattels, till they
fortunately met again in the village hard by, where they were very clamorous to
be supplied with everything they wanted. The Scythian cottagers ran out of
their hovels and inquired into the cause of their vociferations, and being
informed by the barbarians who were in company that they had been put to
confusion by the storm, they invited them in, and kindled speedily a cheerful
blaze with dry reeds.
The mistress of
the hamlet was a lady, who had been one of the wives of Bleda, and hearing of
the misadventure of the Romans, she sent to them a present of victuals, and
also paid them the singular compliment, which
however was a usual practice of honourable hospitality amongst the Huns,
of sending them some beautiful Scythian women, who were enjoined to comply with
all their wishes; but the ambassadors were either too decorous or too
disheartened to be desirous of availing themselves of the offer, and declined
the favours which were destined for them. The ladies were regaled with a
portion of the supper and dismissed, and the ambassadors, having taken their
repose in the cottages of the natives, proceeded at daybreak in search of
their equipments, part of which they found on the spot where they had
encamped, part on the banks of the lake, and part in the water; but the whole
of their goods was recovered, and they tarried all day in the hamlet to dry
them in the sun, which shone out brilliantly after that stormy night. When
due attention had been paid to the beasts of burden, they proceeded to visit
the queen, and, having saluted her, they returned thanks for her hospitality,
and presented her with three silver vessels, some crimson fleeces, Indian
pepper, dates, and other articles for desert, which not being found amongst the
barbarians were valuable to them.
Having thus
returned her compliment, they took their leave and proceeded on their journey
for seven days, till the Scythian conductors made them halt in a village on
their way, because Attila was coming in that direction, and it was not allowable
for them to travel before him. At this place they fell in with
ambassadors from the Western empire, Count Romulus, Primutus praefect of
Noricum, and Romanus general of a division. Constantius was with them, whom
Aetius had sent as a secretary to Attila, and Tatullus the father of
Orestes who was with Edécon, not being members of the legation, but having
undertaken the journey through private motives, the former on account of his
previous intimacy with them in Italy, the latter from relationship, his son
Orestes having married the daughter of Romulus from the city Patavion in
Noricum. Their object was to pacify Attila, who required that Silvanus, a Roman
silversmith, should be delivered up to him, because he had received some golden
vessels from another Constantius, a native of Western Gaul, who had also been
sent as a secretary by Aetius to Attila and Bleda. When the Huns were laying
siege to Sirmium in Paeonia, those vessels had been delivered to
Constantius by the bishop of the place for his own ransom in case he should
survive the capture of the city, and to redeem others amongst the captives if
he should have fallen; but Constantius after the taking of Sirmium was
faithless to his trust, and pawned the vessels for money to Silvanus, to be
redeemed within a given time, or the sale of them to stand good.
Attila and Bleda,
having suspected this Constantius of treason, crucified him, and Attila,
hearing what had been done concerning the golden vessels, demanded Silvanus to
be given up, as a robber of his property. The object of the embassy was
therefore to persuade Attila that Silvanus was no thief, but that having taken
the goods in pawn from Constantius, he had sold them as unredeemed pledges to
the first priests who wished for them, because it was not lawful to sell them
for the use of laymen, as they had been consecrated. The ambassadors were
directed to try to prevail upon Attila to give up his claim to the vessels for
this reason, and, if he persevered, to offer him gold in their stead, but on no
account to give up the innocent silversmith to be crucified. The two parties of
Eastern and Western Romans followed the route of Attila, and, after crossing
some more rivers, they arrived at a large village, where Attila had a fixed
residence.
It is not possible
to gather, from the statement of the journey of the ambassadors, the exact
situation of this place, but the number of days they had travelled makes it
evident that it must have been in the north of Hungary. They had not however
arrived at the Carpathian mountains. Tokay has been mentioned by Buat as the
most probable site. It has been also conjectured that the tents of Attila,
which were first visited by the legation, were pitched opposite Viddin,
and that Jasberin was the site of the royal village; but other
writers have been of opinion that it was in that part of Moldavia which
produces neither stone nor wood, for Priscus states that there was none in the
neighbourhood, and that the stone, with which the baths of Onegesius were
built, was brought out of the land of the Paeonians. That they did not
cross the Danube near Viddin is however evident, because it lies
north-east of Nissa, and Priscus says their general course was westward of
that place; and it seems that they must have crossed a little below Belgrade,
and passed the Themes, the Bega, and the Theiss in the first
instance, and afterwards the large tributary rivers which fall into the Theiss from
the westward, and shaped their course towards Tokay. Jornandes calls
the three rivers named by Priscus, the Tysia, Tibiscia, and Dricca. Tibiscus is
the known name of the Theiss, and Tysia is probably a river
falling into the Theiss which may have given to it the modern name.
Nothing is known concerning the Dricca. To have reached Moldavia they must
have traversed the rivers of Wallachia, shaping their course eastward after
visiting the tents of Attila; but the only certain fact is that they did cross
the Theiss, which lay in the contrary direction, and having done so they
could only have reached Moldavia by recrossing that river, and threading one of
the three passes through the mountains that separate it from Transylvania,
neither of which suppositions is consistent with the narrative of Priscus. In
another passage that writer states that the land of the Paeonians was
by the river Saus, and it is certain from two passages in Menander,
that Saus was the Saave, which falls into the Danube from the
opposite side a little below the Theiss, and the land in question was
evidently the modern Sirmia near Belgrade, whence the stone might
easily be carried up the river Theiss to Tokay in boats, but could
not with any degree of probability have been conveyed to Moldavia. The facility
of water-carriage probably induced Onegesius to procure the stone from Sirmia,
for although there might be stone nearer in the mountains to the north, the
conveyance of it would have been more difficult, and the Huns were probably
from their habits impatient of labour in the quarries.
In the same
situation, or not far distant, on the right of the Theiss, was the strong
hold and palace of the king of the Avar Huns, which was called the Hring and
was destroyed by the armies of Charlemagne in 796, and is said by the writers
of that period to have subsisted many centuries. These stupendous works are
mentioned by Jordanes, who says they were called Hunniwar by
the Huns, but he does not describe them; and it is observable that the name of
Ring by which they were known in the eighth century is also a Teutonic word,
which probably had descended from the Huns of Attila, to the Avars who
then occupied them. Priscus uses an expression equivalent to ring, when he
speaks of the enclosure, which surrounded the dwelling of Attila, by the Greek
word peribolos. In the reign of Charlemagne, we find the marvellous
fortifications of the Huns occupied by the Avars, who acquired the
ascendancy at a period subsequent to the death of Attila, by whom they had been
subdued, and afterwards were called Huns by the neighbouring nations.
These works are
particularly described by Notgerus Balbus, commonly called the Monk
of St. Gall in a passage of most difficult construction. He states, that the
land of the Huns was surrounded by nine circles; and that when, imagining the
circles to be common hedges, he asked Aldabert, who had served under
Charlemagne, what was the wonder, he learned from him that one circle was as
wide, or comprehended in itself as much, as the distance from Constance to a
place called Castrum Turonicum, of which the site in all probability
cannot now be ascertained.
The abbot of Saint
Gall was under the jurisdiction of the bishop of Constance, and Castrum Turonicum must
have been some place in that neighbourhood not having a see. It does not mean
Tours, which was Caesarodunum Turonum. He goes on to state, that each
circle was so constructed with stems of oak, beech, and fir, that it was twenty
feet wide and twenty high; that the whole cavity was filled with hard stones,
or tenacious chalk, perhaps meaning mortar. The surface was covered with sods.
Between, bushes were planted, which (according to the probable meaning of the
expression) were cut after the manner of clipped hedges. Between these circles,
hamlets and villages were so placed, that the human voice could be heard from
one to another. Opposite these buildings, narrow doors were fabricated in the
strong walls. “Also (he adds) from the second circle, which was constructed in
like manner as the first, there was an extent of twenty Teutonic, which are
forty Italian, miles unto the third. In like manner even unto the ninth;
although the circles themselves were much more contracted one than another; and
from circle to circle tenements and habitations were so arranged in every
direction, that by the sound of trumpets the signification of everything could
be comprehended at the distance between each of them”.
From the very
obscure passage of which the above is a close translation, we learn first that
the distance between the two outer circles was equal to that of Constance from
an unknown town; that the distance between the second and third was forty
Italian miles of five thousand feet, equal to near thirty-eight English
miles. The word also might seem to imply that the distance between
the first and second circle, or between Constance and Castrum Turonicum,
was also about thirty-eight English miles, but that would give too great a
diameter. It is much more difficult to explain what follows; it may imply that
the spaces between the circles were invariably equal, adding the mere truism,
that the circumference of the inner concentric circles was necessarily smaller
than that of the outer; or it may imply that the walls were built in the same
manner throughout, but that the inner spaces were narrower. If the former
interpretation be adopted, which certainly appears more conformable to the
words, and the spaces between the several rings, and between the inner ring and
the centre be considered to have been similar, that is, thirty-eight English
miles, the diameter of the outer circle would be six hundred and eighty-four
miles, and would enclose a great deal more than the whole of Hungary, and is
inconsistent with what we have reason to believe, that the rings were situated
between the Danube and the Theiss.
A circle of about
one hundred and fifty miles diameter will enclose the greater part of Upper
Hungary between those two rivers, the Mora, and the Krapac mountains,
and such was probably the site and extent of those great works, supposing the
space between the two exterior belts to have been less than between the second
and third, perhaps sixteen miles, and the remaining twenty-one miles of the
radius, or forty-two of the diameter, to have been divided amongst the seven
interior. The inner portion would thus have consisted of seven concentric
circles, like the town of Ecbatana, as described by Herodotus, to which two
wider belts were superadded. The celebrated labyrinth of Crete was perhaps
a structure of the same kind.
Eginhart, notary
of Charlemagne, in his Annales, says that in 791 the emperor
defeated the Huns upon the Danube, drove them from their fortifications, and
penetrated to the mouth of the river Arrabon or Raab. That in
796 Eric duke of Friuli plundered the Ringus, and that later in the same
year, Pepin having driven the Huns across the Theiss, and utterly
demolished their palace, “which is Ringus, but is called by the Lombards Campus”,
sent their treasures to Charlemagne. In his Vita Caroli Magni,
the notary says the wars with the Huns lasted eight years, and were so bloody that
all the dwellings in Pannonia were destroyed, and not a vestige of a human
habitation remained in the place where the palace of the chagawn had
been situated.
The anonymous
annals of Charlemagne say that in 791 he took the defenses of
the Avars, advanced to the Raab, and retired; and in 796 he received
a message in Saxony, which informed him that Pepin was lodged with his army in
the Ring. The unknown author of another Vita Caroli Magni,
says that in 791 the Huns abandoned their works near the Danube, and he marched
to the river Raab. In 796 Henry duke of Friuli (for Henry and Eric are
different forms of the same name) having sent a force into Pannonia, plundered
the Ring of the Avars, who were divided by civil war, the chagawn having
been murdered by his own people; and he sent their treasures, which had been
accumulated there during a long course of centuries, to Charlemagne. That in
the same year Thudun came over to him with a great part of the Avars,
and was baptized; and before the end of that year (796) a message was received
by Charlemagne, that Pepin had come to blows with the new chagawn and
his nobles, and again a second message that Pepin was lodged in the Ring.
Another author who
wrote about the year 858, says that in 796 Pepin arrived at the celebrated
place which is called Rinch, where the Huns surrendered to him. An ancient
Saxon poet, who wrote in the reign of Arnolf, AD 888,
gives a similar account, and says that Pepin beat the Huns beyond the Theiss,
and leveled to the ground their royal residence called Hring. It
is quite clear that the palace or royal residence in which the plunder of
Europe had been then stored up for three or four centuries was the central ring
or circle of the nine circumvallations which have been described;
and, as they had existed for centuries, there is no reason to doubt that they
were the identical fortifications which Jordanes states to have existed in the
time of Attila under the name of Hunniwar. The central ring was perhaps in
the neighbourhood of Gomor in Upper Hungary. It is observable that
Eusebius, speaking of the six concentric walls to the Babylon of
Nebuchadnezzar, calls them by the same word (periboloi) which is used by
Priscus in describing the residence of Attila.
A passage
concerning the abode of the Hunnish monarch in Saemund’s Edda,
which has been entirely misunderstood by the Latin translator, and which the
annotator calls one of the passages in the poem which cannot be solved, alludes
to the concentric circumvallations as having existed in the time of
Attila, and it was only difficult, because he knew not the nature of the
defences to which it refers. It may be translated literally thus. “They saw the
land of Attila and deep towers; the fierce men stand in that high bourg, the
hall around the people of the South, surrounded with set-beams, with circles
bound together, with white shields, the obstacle of spearmen. There
Attila was drinking wine in his divine hall. The warders sat without.” The
translator renders the word sess-meithom, seat-beams, and
explains it thus, that the hall had wooden seats round it, and that either a
bundle of shields was hung over head above the seats, or single shields tied
together suspended against the wall. On reference to the detailed account of
the Hunnish fortifications, it is evident that the set-beams are the
stems (stipites) with which the circumvallations were constructed;
that the circles bound together are the concentric belts or rings; that the
white shields are a figurative illustration of the same, white, because as the
Monk of St. Gall says, they were made with chalk, and shields, as
explained in the next line, because they were obstacles opposed to the attack
of an enemy.
The editors could
not have found this easy solution of the passage in Scandinavian literature,
and they looked no further. The conformity of these various and very ancient
authorities gives strong reason for assuming that Attila had (to use the
remarkable expression of Ammianus Marcellinus when speaking of the circular
positions of the Alans) circumcircated the district of Upper
Hungary, and that hither Priscus was conducted; not to the inmost ring, but the
village situated perhaps on the outside of its eastern entrance near Tokay,
as Sicambria the favourite abode of Attila near Buda was perhaps at
its southern entrance; but it is possible that the exterior belts may not have
been constructed till a later period. The dwelling of Attila, and that of
Onegesius, are both described by Priscus, as being surrounded with a circular
construction of wood, which he calls peribolos, not for security,
but for ornament, which shows the affection the Huns had for the Ring in their
architecture. The palace of Attila exceeded all the other structures in size
and conspicuous appearance. It was built with massive timber, and beautifully
polished planks, and adorned with towers. The dwelling of Onegesius was the
next in importance, but not ornamented with towers, though in like manner
environed by a wooden ring, formed of upright timber close set in the ground.
At a short distance were the baths which Onegesius, who had great wealth and
influence amongst the Huns, had caused to be constructed of stone from
the Sirmian quarries, by a captive architect who was a native
of Sirmium, and had vainly hoped that his manumission would be the reward
of his labours; but Onegesius, after the building was completed, made the
unfortunate architect superintendant of the bath, and caused him to
wait upon himself and his friends during their ablutions.
As Attila made his
entry into this village, a number of damsels advanced to meet him, arranged in
ranks under, white veils of exceeding fineness, which were of great length, and
so extended and held aloft by the hands of the women, that under every one of
them walked seven or more damsels, singing Scythian airs, and the rows of young
women thus placed under the veils were very numerous.
The way to the
royal residence lay by the dwelling of Onegesius, and, as Attila was passing
it, the wife of Onegesius came out with a multitude of servants bearing dressed
fish and wine, which is the highest compliment amongst the Huns, and she
saluted Attila praying him to partake of her liberality. He, wishing to appear
gracious to the wife of his confidential friend, ate as he sat upon his horse,
a table of massive silver being lifted up to him by the attendants; and, having
tasted of the cup offered to him, he retired into his own palace, which was
placed in a more elevated situation than the other buildings, and overlooked
them.
The ambassadors
were invited into the house of Onegesius, who had returned together with the
son of Attila, and they dined there, being received by the wife of Onegesius
and the most distinguished of his relatives; for he had not leisure to partake
with them, having been summoned to make a report of the transactions of his
mission to Attila, who had not before seen him since his return, and to detail
die particulars of the misadventure of Attila’s son, who had broken his right
arm by a fall. When they withdrew from the hospitable board of Onegesius, the
Romans pitched their tents in the neighbourhood of the palace of Attila, that Maximin
might be at hand to confer with him or his counsellors. Early the next morning
Priscus was sent by Maximin to Onegesius to present to him the gifts which he
brought on his own part and that of the emperor, and to learn whether the
favourite would grant him an interview, and at what time.
The Huns had not
risen so early as the Romans, and, the doors being all closed, the historian
remained with the menials who bore the presents, waiting without the ring of
timber that surrounded the buildings, until some person should happen to come
out. While he was walking up and down to beguile the time, he was surprised on
being addressed by a man habited as a Hun who bade him hail in the Greek
language, which was rarely spoken by any amongst them, except captives from
Thrace or the coast of Illyria, and those might be at once recognized by the
miserable and squalid condition of their garments and hair; but this man
appeared to be a Scythian in excellent plight, with his hair neatly cropped all
round.
Having returned
his salutation, Priscus was informed that he was a Greek who had gone to attend
the fair at the Mysian city Viminacium on the Danube, where
he had married a rich wife and established himself; but, on the capture of that
town by the Huns, he and all his wealth had fallen to the lot of Onegesius, in
the division of the spoil amongst the principal followers of Attila. Sometime
after, having fought valiantly in company with the Huns against the Romans
and Acatzires, according to the Scythian law he had regained his liberty
by surrendering to his master all the plunder he had made in the war; and,
having a place at the table of Onegesius, he was well satisfied with his
present condition: for that the Huns, when the labours of warfare were at an
end, lived without any cares, enjoying their possessions without any
molestation, and in perfect security. On the other hand he drew a melancholy
picture of the state of the empire, of which the subjects were easily taken or
slain in war, because the jealousy of their masters prevented their being
entrusted with arms for their own defence, and that even those, who carried
arms on behalf of the Romans, suffered grievously from the incapacity and
inertness of their officers; but that in peace the case was even worse than in
war, through the weight of taxes and the extortion of evil men in power, the
laws not being equally administered to all, but transgressed with impunity by
the rich and powerful, while strictly carried into operation against the
indigent, if indeed they survived the period of a protracted and ruinous
lawsuit; and so deeply rooted was the corruption of justice, that no man
amongst them could hope for the protection of the laws, without conciliating by
money the favour of the judge and his dependants.
The historian
according to his own account attempted to reply to the censures of the apostate
Greek by a feeble panegyric on the system of Roman jurisprudence, without
contradicting the facts that were alleged. This brought forth a brief
observation, which appears to have been unanswerable and uncontroverted, that
the constitution of Rome might be good, and her laws excellent, but that both
were perverted by the corruption of those who administered them.
The door haying
been at length opened accidentally, Priscus eagerly enquired for Onegesius,
stating that he came from Maximin the ambassador of the Romans; but this
application did not procure admission for him, and he was requested to wait
till the Hun should come forth. Onegesius having appeared soon after, accepted
the gold and presents, which he ordered his attendants to carry into the house;
and he replied to the request which Maximin made for an interview, that he
would visit the Roman in his tent. This he did soon after, and, having thanked
him for the presents, enquired upon what account he had requested an interview.
Maximin expressed
an earnest desire that Onegesius should personally proceed into the Roman
territory, and enquire into and adjust the points in dispute favourably to the
emperor. Onegesius rejected with indignation all tampering with his allegiance,
asking if they imagined that he did not esteem servitude under Attila to be
more honourable than independent wealth amongst the Romans; but added that he
could be more useful to them by remaining where he was and softening the
frequent irritation of his monarch, than by going amongst them and exposing
himself to blame, if he should act in any respect against the opinion of
Attila.
Before he
departed, Onegesius consented to receive the future communications of the
ambassador through the intervention of Priscus, because the high dignity of
Maximin would have rendered frequent and protracted interviews with him
unbecoming and probably liable to suspicion. On the following day the historian
penetrated the ring which enclosed the mansions of Attila, being the bearer of
presents to Kreka (or Creca) his principal queen, who had borne
him three sons, of whom the eldest had been raised to the rank of king over
the Acatzires and other tribes bordering upon the Euxine. The various
buildings within the enclosure were of wood; some constructed with planks
expertly fitted together and beautified with pannels or carvings of
in sculpture; others of straight massive timber perfectly squared and planed,
and ornamented in relief with highly wrought beams or mouldings.
The visitors
having been admitted by the Huns, who were standing at the door, found the
queen reclining upon a soft counterpane, the floor of the room being delicately
carpeted, and opposite to her were sitting upon the carpet damsels employed in
embroidering veils or scarfs, which were worn by the Huns over their clothing
for ornament. Having saluted her and presented the gifts, Priscus withdrew,
and, waiting for Onegesius who was known to have entered the residence of
Attila, he proceeded towards some of the other buildings, in which he then
resided, without any interruption from the guards to whom he was known.
Standing amidst the crowd of people, he observed the multitude in motion, and a
press and noise, as if the monarch was coming forth; and presently he saw him,
accompanied by Onegesius, issue from his dwelling, bearing himself haughtily
and casting his eyes round on all sides.
Many, who had
controversies, came before him, and received in the open air his sentence on
the points in dispute; and, after the close of his judicial labours, he
re-entered the house and gave audience to the ambassadors of various barbarian
nations. Priscus continued to await the leisure of Onegesius in the palace
court, where he was accosted by the ambassadors from the Western empire, who
inquired whether Maximin had received his dismissal, or was under the necessity
of remaining.
Priscus replied
that he was waiting for Onegesius to ascertain that very point, and enquired
into the success of their mission, but was informed by them that Attila was
quite inexorable and denounced immediate war against Valentinian, unless either
Silvanus or the golden vessels were delivered up to him. Priscus, having
expressed his surprise at the arrogance of Attila, received some interesting
information from Romulus, whose sources of knowledge were undeniable, his
daughter being married to Orestes the follower of Edécon and scribe of Attila,
whose father Tatullus was even then in the company.
This information
is very important, for we may rely upon it as the true statement of the power
of Attila at that time, and the extent of his empire. He asserted that no king,
either of Scythia or any other land had done such great things in so short a
time; inasmuch as his rule extended over the islands in the ocean, and in
addition to all Scythia, he had reduced the Romans to be tributary to him; and
that, not content with his European conquests, he was meditating even then the
subjugation of Persia.
The Danish historians,
who are determined to shut their eyes against the fact, that Attila was master
of the Danish islands and the south of Scandinavia which the Romans considered
to be an island called by them Thule, and that in truth they have no authentic
history previous to the time of Attila, who is mixed up under diverse names in
their ancient legends, have asserted that Russia was looked upon as insular by
the Romans, and was meant by the islands of the ocean upon this occasion.
But the statement
of Priscus is an unequivocal admission by an enemy to Attila, who had the means
of knowing and could not be mistaken, that he did rule over the islands of the
ocean generally, and whether part of Russia was supposed to be an island and
included under the denomination or not, that single portion could not by any
interpretation have been intended to the exclusion of the rest. On the other
hand the words may be interpreted to include Great Britain and Ireland, and it
may be a matter of doubt whether even that was not intended, and whether,
although Attila never set foot in Great Britain, the legends of St Patric and
Arthur, which are contemporaneous with and have evident reference to him, do
not represent the influence and authority which he had acquired in the British
isles through his emissaries and the weight of his Antichristian pretensions;
but with respect to his dominion over the Danish and Scandinavian territory,
which was more particularly called the islands of the ocean, the assertion of
Romulus made in the presence of the father of Orestes would have been
irrefragable, even if it had not been confirmed, as it is, by the concurring
evidence of the Scandinavian sagas and Teutonic legends.
The Eastern
Romans, having enquired through what quarter he would be able to attack the
Persians, were further informed by him that the dominions of Attila extended to
the neighbourhood of the Medes, and that Bazic and Cursic, two
Huns of the blood royal, who ruled over many followers and afterwards went to
Rome to negotiate an alliance, had actually penetrated into Media, the Romans
being prevented by other wars at that time from interfering to prevent the
inroad. The account given by those princes was that they had crossed a desert
tract and afterwards a lake, which Romulus supposed to be the Maeotis, and
after fifteen day’s journey surmounted a ridge of hills and descended into
Media, which they began to ravage, but an immense host of Persian archers having
come upon them, they were forced to fall back carrying with them only a small
portion of the booty. Romulus therefore represented, that if Attila should
determine to attack the Medes and Persians and Parthians, and render them
tributary, he would find ready access to their territory, and had ample means
to reduce them, against which no nation could make head successfully.
The party of
Priscus having said that it was a consummation greatly to be desired, that
Attila should be pleased to attack the Persians, and leave the empire at peace,
were judiciously answered by Constantiolus that after the reduction
of the Medes, Persians, and Parthians, Attila would be found still more
formidable, and would no longer bear that the Roman empire should continue
distinct from his own, but would treat them openly as his slaves; whereas at
present he was contented with the payment of gold in consideration of the
dignity conferred upon him; for, as Priscus witnesses, the degenerate Romans
had bestowed upon their most dreaded antagonist the title of commander in chief
over the Roman forces; but the Hun, not contented with the title by which, at
the expense of national honour, they had hoped to sooth his vanity, demanded an
ample stipend in the character of commander in chief; and even at that time in
his angry moments he was wont to say, that his servants were the commanders of
armies, and equal in honour with the emperors of Rome. “And yet (he adds) his
power will erelong be greater, as the sword of Mars revealed by the God testifies,
which being reputed sacred and worshipped by the Scythian kings as dedicated to
the dispenser of battles, had disappeared in former times, but had been again
found through the means of a heifer”, which had been wounded by it, and left a
track of blood that led to its discovery.
Onegesius, having
at length come forth, delayed answering the enquiries of Priscus, till he had
conversed with some barbarians, after which he desired him to enquire from
Maximin what man of consular dignity the Romans intended to send to treat with
Attila, a question which must have been insolently intended, inasmuch as
Maximin was of high rank and appointed for that special purpose.
Priscus having
made this report and consulted with his principal, returned to answer the insult
by a compliment to Onegesius, saying that the Romans would prefer that he
should proceed to their court to adjust the points in controversy; but, if that
could not be obtained, they would send whatever person would be most acceptable
to Attila. Thereupon Onegesius desired Priscus to request the immediate
presence of Maximin, whom he conducted straightway to the monarch.
Attila demanded
that either Nomus or Anatolius or Senator should be sent to
him, refusing to receive any other person in the character of ambassador.
Maximin having represented to him, that by naming the persons with whom he
chose to confer he could not fail to alarm the suspicions of Theodosius, he
replied that unless they thought fit to do as he required, he would settle the
controversy by the sword.
On the return of
the ambassador and historian to the Roman tents, they were visited by the
father of Orestes, who brought them an invitation from Attila to a banquet at
the ninth hour of the day. At the appointed time the legates from the Eastern
and Western empire, having proceeded together according to the invitation,
stood at the threshold of the banqueting hall of Attila. After the fashion of
the Hunnish court, the cupbearers, who were stationed near the door,
placed a goblet in their hands, that they might drink a health to Attila before
they took their places, to which they advanced after having tasted the cup. The
seats were all placed against the wall on either side, but Attila sat on an
elevated couch in the centre, another couch being placed behind him, from
whence there was an ascent by means of steps to that on which he was seated.
The historian
states that the seats on the right hand of Attila were considered the most
honourable, and those on the left were secondary situations, which however were
allotted to the Roman ambassadors, Bench, a noble Scythian, being placed above
them. Onegesius sat upon a seat on the right beside the couch of Attila, and
opposite to him on another seat were two of the monarch’s sons. The eldest of
the three, who were all children of Kreka, sat on the very couch of
Attila, not beside him, but on the furthest edge, looking on the ground out of
respect to his father. When the whole company were arranged in the several
places destined for them, a cupbearer approaching Attila handed a goblet to
him. Each guest had a particular cupbearer, whose duty it was to place himself
in rank with the others, when the king’s cupbearer advanced.
Attila, having
taken the goblet, saluted the person who occupied the first place, and he who
was thus honoured arose, nor was it lawful for him to sit down till having
either emptied, or at least tasted, his own goblet, he had returned it to his
cupbearer. In this manner Attila drank successively to the health of each of
his convives, and, when he reseated himself, they returned the
salutation, tasting the liquor after having addressed him. When this
ceremony was ended, the cupbearers retired from the hall. Tables for three,
four, or more guests, were placed behind that of Attila, where each person
might help himself from the dish before him, but must not move from the place
allotted to him. Then stepped forth the first attendant of Attila, bearing a
dish filled with meat, and after him those who distributed bread and fish to
the different tables. For the Romans and all the other guests a most sumptuous
repast was furnished upon round silver plates, but the king himself ate nothing
but flesh and that upon a wooden trencher, and showed like moderation in
everything else, for the goblets of all his guests were of gold or of silver,
but his own cup was also of wood. His dress was equally simple, being
remarkable only for its perfect cleanness; and neither the formidable sword
that hung beside him, nor the ligaments of his sandals, nor the bit of his
horse was ornamented with gold and precious stones, like those of his
followers. His personal appearance is recorded by Jordanes, extracting the
description undoubtedly from Priscus, whom he cites immediately afterwards, but
the original account is lost.
His stature was
short, with a wide chest, a head of unusual magnitude, and small eyes which he
had a habit of casting to the right and left with a haughty aspect; his beard
was thin with an intermixture of grey hairs, his nose flat, and his complexion
very dark, indicating his origin, as we are told by Jordanes, but whether he
means simply that he had the peculiarities of the Hunnish race, or
alludes to the diabolical extraction which he attributes to them, does not
perfectly appear.
Having ate of the
fish which was served on the first dishes, the whole company stood up, and no
one might sit down again before he had quaffed to the bottom a cup full of
wine, wishing health and prosperity to Attila. Having rendered him this honour,
each person reseated himself, and proceeded to attack the second
dish, which contained some other dainty; but after each dish had been finished,
the same ceremony of standing up, and emptying a cup of wine to the monarch’s
health was repeated.
When the daylight
began to fail, torches were lighted, and two barbarians, standing opposite to
him, recited verses which they had composed, celebrating his victories, and the
virtues which adorn a warrior. The guests appeared to listen to them with
earnest attention, some delighted with the poetry, some excited by the
recollections of the battles that were described, and others melting even into
tears, their warlike spirit having been reduced by age to languish within a
body no longer apt for military exertions.
When the songs
were ended, a Scythian fool, uttering every sort of absurdity, made the whole
court laugh. After him Zercon the Moor entered. He had come to the
court, hoping by the good offices of Edécon to recover his wife, who, when he
was a favourite with Bleda, had been given to him amongst the barbarians, but
had been left by him in Scythia, when he was sent by Attila as a present to
Aetius. He was ill-grown, short, hump-backed, with crooked legs, so excessively
flat nosed, that there was scarcely any projection over his nostrils, and he
lisped ridiculously. He had been formerly given to Aspar the son of Ardaburius,
with whom he tarried some time in Lybia; but he was afterwards
taken prisoner, when the Huns made an irruption into Thrace, and brought to
the Hunnish kings. Attila hated to look on him, but Bleda took great
delight in him, on account of the absurd things which he said, and his
whimsical manner of walking and moving his body; and he kept him in his
presence both at banquets and in warfare, and in his military expeditions he made
him wear armour as a laughing-stock.
The ugly dwarf
however contrived to make his escape with some other captives, but Bleda
neglecting to pursue the others, ordered the most active search to be made
after Zercon, and, when he was retaken and brought before him, he enquired
why he preferred servitude under the Romans to his household; whereupon the
Moor confessed his error, but attributed his flight entirely to the want of a
wife. Bleda laughed exceedingly, and said that he should have one; and in fact
so absolute were the Hunnish kings, that he gave him in marriage a
woman of noble birth, who had been an attendant on the queen, but on account of
some unseasonable act was no longer permitted to approach her. He continued
thus with Bleda until his death, when he was sent by Attila as a present to
Aetius, who gave him back to Aspar. Having now returned to the court of Attila,
he was disappointed in the hope of recovering his wife, because Attila was
incensed at his having run away, when he had sent him as a present; but at this
moment of festivity, by his look, his dress, and voice, and by the confusion of
the words he used, blending in a ludicrous manner the language of the Goths and
Huns with that of the Latins, he excited all the party, except Attila, to the
most inextinguishable laughter; but Attila sat motionless, without the least
change of countenance, and neither by word or sign showed any semblance of
hilarity; excepting that he pinched the cheek of his youngest son by Kreka,
named Ernas or Irnach, as he stood by him, and looked upon him
with kindness. Priscus, having expressed his surprise, at his apparent
preference for this child and neglect of the others, to a Scythian who sat by
him and understood Latin, was told by him under promise of secrecy that it had
been prophesied to Attila, that his race, which must otherwise be extinguished,
would be upheld by this boy.
The carouse was
prolonged far into the night, but the Romans, finding the potations
inconveniently liberal, thought it advisable to withdraw; and on the following
morning they visited Onegesius for the purpose of asking to be dismissed, and
not kept wasting their time to no avail. They were informed by him that Attila
desired their departure, and having left them for a short time he consulted
with the select council concerning the wishes of Attila, and digested the
letters which were to be sent to Theodosius with the assistance of certain
scribes, and of Rusticius, who has been already mentioned, a native
of Mysia who had been taken prisoner, and on account of his fluency
in composition was retained in the epistolary department at the court of the
Hun. The council being ended, the ambassadors applied to Onegesius for the
liberation of the wife and children of Sylla, who had been captured in Ratiaria.
He was not averse to set them free, but required an enormous ransom; whereupon
they strove to move his compassion, by representing their former rank and
condition, and their present misery. After having seen Attila again, he
liberated the lady for 500 pieces of gold, and sent the children as a present
to the emperor.
In the meantime
the ambassadors had received an invitation from Rekan the wife of
Attila, to sup at the house of Adam the superintendant of her
household and affairs; and having proceeded together with some of the principal
Scythians, they were received with much courtesy, and fared sumptuously. Each
of the guests paid them the singular compliment after the Hunnish fashion
of standing up from the table and giving them a cup of wine, and, after they
had drunk, embracing them and kissing them before he received back the cup. The
supper was prolonged till it was time to retire to rest, and on the following
day they were again invited to feast with Attila. The same forms were observed
as on the former day, but instead of his elder son, Obarsius or Obars his
uncle on the father’s side sat on his couch.
During the repast
the monarch spoke kindly to them, desiring them to request the emperor to send
a wife, as he had promised, for Constantius the secretary who had been given to
him by Aetius. This Constantius, having previously accompanied the ambassadors
whom Attila had sent to Theodosius, had promised that he would exert himself to
make the peace durable, if the emperor would bestow a rich wife upon him, which
was granted, and the daughter of Saturninus a rich and distinguished
Greek, was promised to him. But Saturninus was afterwards
assassinated by the empress Eudocia, and the emperor was prevented by
Zeno, a man of consular dignity, from fulfilling his promise. This man had led
a great force of Isaurians to the protection of Constantinople during
the war, and, having then the command of all the forces in the East, he had
withdrawn the damsel from the custody in which she had been placed, and had
betrothed her to Rufus, one of his own dependants.
Constantius
complained to the emperor of the insult and injustice done to him, and asked to
have either the lady who had been thus abducted, or another bride of equal rank
and opulence; on which account Attila enjoined to Maximin the care of the
interests of his secretary, who undertook to give him a portion of the dowry,
if he should succeed in obtaining one of the most wealthy Greek heiresses in
marriage.
Three days after,
the ambassadors of Theodosius were dismissed with gifts, and with them Attila
sent, on a mission to the emperor, Berich, who has been mentioned as
having sat above them at the banquet. He was a member of the select council,
and lord over many Scythian villages, and had been on some former occasion
received by the Romans on an embassy.
During the
journey, while they were tarrying in a certain village, a Scythian was taken,
who had been sent as a spy by the Romans into the territory of Attila, who
forthwith ordered him to be crucified. On the next day, as they were passing
through another village, they saw two men who had formerly been taken prisoners
in war, and were conducted with their hands tied behind them, having been
guilty of murdering the masters to whom they had been allotted; and these were
also crucified, their heads having been fixed to two beams furnished with
hooks.
At the passage of
the Danube, Berich, who had until then been exceedingly familiar and
friendly, became very hostile and exasperated in consequence of some futile
differences between the servants. He showed the first mark of resentment by
redemanding a horse which he had given to Maximin; for Attila had ordered all
the members of the select council to offer gifts to Maximin, and a horse had
been sent by every one of them; Maximin however, wishing to get credit for
moderation, had accepted only a few and sent back the remainder. Not content
with requiring back his gift, Berich would no longer keep company
with them on the road or eat with them; but having passed through Philippopolis
and reached Adrianople, they came to an explanation with him, and a seeming
reconciliation having taken place, they invited him to supper. On their arrival
however at Constantinople it appeared that he still nourished the same resentment,
alleging as a cause some offensive depreciation of Areobindus and
Aspar by Maximin, detracting from their achievements in war, on account of the
insignificance of the barbarians to whom they had been opposed, which he looked
upon as an insult to himself and his countrymen.
On the way they
had met Bigilas returning from Constantinople, and had informed him
of the result of their mission. When Bigilas reached the quarter
where Attila was then sojourning, he was seized by persons who had received
previous directions to that effect, and the money which he was bringing for
Edécon was taken from him. Being brought before Attila, he was asked, for what
purpose he had brought so much gold; to which he replied, that he had brought
it to supply himself and his companions with horses and other necessaries on
the road, and with a view to ransom several captives, by whose relations he had
been strenuously entreated; but Attila addressing him said,
“Nevertheless, O malignant wild beast, you shall not by your sophistry escape
judgment, nor will any pretext be sufficient to screen you from the
infliction of punishment, for the money which thou hast in store is infinitely
greater than necessary for thy expenses, or the purchase of horses and beasts
of burden, or even for the ransom of captives, all which moreover I forbad you
when thou earnest with Maximin”. Having thus said, he ordered the son
of Bigilas, who had been then for the first time brought to the Hunnish court,
to be hewn down with the sword, unless he should forthwith declare unto whom
and for what purpose he was bringing so much gold. But, when Bigilas beheld
his son about to suffer death, he began to weep and lament, and cry out that
justice demanded that he should be smitten with the sword, and not his son who
was innocent of all offence; and without further delay he confessed all the
things that had been devised between himself and Edécon, the eunuch Chrysaphius and
the emperor, again imploring that he might be executed and not his
son. Attila knowing from the previous report of Edécon that Bigilas had
spoken the truth, directed him to be kept in chains, and threatened that he
would not set him free, until his son should have been sent to
Constantinople, and should have brought back other five hundred pieces of gold
for their ransom. He therefore remained in custody, and his son was sent
together with Orestes and Eslas to Constantinople.
The purse, in
which the gold had been brought by Bigilas, was delivered to Edécon, and
he was ordered by Attila to suspend it to his neck, and thus to enter the
presence of the emperor, and having shown it to ask Chrysaphius whether
he recognized it. Eslas was ordered to state that Theodosius was
indeed the son of a noble father, and that Attila was also of noble birth, and
had well sustained the nobility inherited from his father Mundiuc, but that
Theodosius had fallen from his dignified station by submitting to pay tribute
to him, and was become his slave; and that he therefore acted ill in devising
secret snares like a wicked domestic against his superior, whom fortune had
given him for his master. That Attila would not forgive the offence committed
by him, unless the eunuch Chrysaphius were delivered up to undergo
condign punishment. The storm, which was soon to burst on Chrysaphius,
threatened him from more than one quarter; on the one side Attila demanded his
life, on the other Zeno, incensed against the minister on account of the act of
his master, who had confiscated to the public treasury the property of the
daughter of Saturninus, whom Zeno had married to his dependant Theodosius
had ordered the confiscation, being stung by the report of Maximin, who had
stated that Attila had said that the emperor ought to fulfil his promise and
give the lady to Constantius, for that no one amongst his subjects could have
power to betroth her in contravention of his authority and engagements; that if
the man who had dared to do so had not already suffered punishment for his
temerity, the emperor was a slave to his own servants, and that he would
willingly afford him assistance to emancipate him from their dominion.
The party of Chrysaphius,
however, being prevalent at the court of Theodosius, it was determined to
dispatch to Attila Anatolius master of the royal guard, who had
proposed the terms of peace which had been concluded with the Huns, and Nomus having
the title of master of the forces; both numbered amongst the patricians who had
precedence over regular military rank. Nomus was sent with Anatolius,
because he was very friendly to Chrysaphius, and Attila well-disposed to
receive him, and because he was also a man of great wealth, and was never
sparing of money, when he had any object to accomplish. They were directed to
use every endeavour to mollify Attila, and persuade him to adhere to the treaty
which had been concluded; and to promise Constantius a wife in every respect as
desirable as the lady of whom he had been disappointed; assuring him that the
daughter of Saturninus had been averse to the alliance proposed, and
was lawfully wedded to another; and that the Roman law did not authorize the
betrothment of a woman to any man without her own consent.
Chrysaphius sent
a present of gold to pacify the offended monarch. The mission of Theodosius
having crossed the Danube proceeded through the territory of the Huns as far as
the Drencon or Drecon; for Attila, through respect for Anatolius and Nomus whom
he esteemed, advanced towards them and met them on the banks of that river, to
save them a further journey. At first he spoke to them in the most overbearing
tone, but at length their gifts and conciliatory language prevailed over his
irritated temper, and he consented to keep the peace, and gave up to the Romans
all the land he claimed to the south of the Danube, and waived his demands for
the restoration of fugitives, on condition that the Romans should pledge
themselves to receive none in future. He also set free Bigilas, having
received the 500 pounds of gold which his son had brought with the embassy; and
he further, to show his kindness towards Nomus and Anatolius,
liberated several captives without any ransom; and he dismissed the ambassadors
with presents of horses and skins of wild beasts, such as were usually worn for
ornament by the Scythian kings.
Constantius was
directed to proceed with them on their return to Constantinople, that he might
obtain without further delay, the rich heiress promised to him by the emperor;
nor was the secretary unsuccessful in this expedition, but consummated his
nuptials with the widow of Armatius, the son of Plinthas, who had
been a Roman general and consul. The lady was both rich and noble, and espoused
Constantius at the request of the emperor. It is impossible to contemplate
these transactions, of which Priscus, who was engaged in them, has left such
minute particulars, without blushing at the perfidious villainy of the Christian
court, and admiring the noble magnanimity and moderation of the pagan on this
occasion; but it was perhaps the policy of Attila to represent his own life to
be so protected by the great destinies for which he pretended to have been
foredoomed, that such attempts against it were very unimportant and certain of
ending in discomfiture; and it might be more for his interest to treat them
with scorn, than to attract attention to them by a public execution.
In the whole
career of his life he was disposed to clemency when it did not militate against
the success of his undertakings, but inexorable and remorseless where it was
his interest to disarm opposition by the terror of his exterminating vengeance.
The indiscriminate slaughter of the inhabitants of a town captured after an
obstinate defence, might deter another from resisting, but he must have been
aware that those, who had entered into a direct conspiracy against his life,
must have done so with the certain expectation of crucifixion if they should
foil; and that the punishment, if inflicted, would add nothing to the motives
which necessarily existed to deter men from engaging in so desperate an
undertaking; and that treating it lightly, as a vain and impracticable scheme
which it was not worth his while to punish, might be the best mode of deterring
the superstitious from attempting it. It is most remarkable that his personal
respect and deference for Nomus and Anatolius should have
won from him in the plenitude of his strength and at the very moment when he
must have been most irritated by the treacherous and disgusting designs of
Theodosius, concessions which would in vain have been sought for by an appeal
to arms.
The empire,
however, though relieved from the immediate fear of Attila, was threatened with
internal dissensions, and Zeno became a formidable rival to his master. The
sword of Attila, though sheathed, was ever ready for fresh contests, and he
appears to have been in the following year (AD 450) excited to new
threats of invasion, in consequence of the non-payment of the stipulated
tribute by the emperor.
Apollonius,
brother to Rufus then defunct, to whom Zeno had given the daughter of Saturninus,
friendly to Zeno upon that account, and bearing the rank of general, was
dispatched to pacify Attila; but, having crossed the Danube, he was denied
access to him: for Attila was enraged at the retention of the
tribute, which he said had been arranged and agreed upon by men better and
more worthy to reign than Theodosius, and he therefore rejected the ambassador,
to show his contempt for the emperor; but, although he refused to admit his
messenger, or to enter into any negotiation, he nevertheless ordered the gifts
of Theodosius to be sent to him, and threatened Apollonius with death if he
should deny them. The ambassador however showed a spirit worthy of the ancient
fortunes of Rome, and replied, that it did not become the Scythians to ask for
what they must take either as gifts, or by plunder; signifying that he was
ready to give them if his embassy was received, but that the Huns must take
them as booty if they thought fit to assassinate him. Attila, however, though
he frequently indulged in such threats, appears in fact to have always
respected the immunity conferred on ambassadors by the common consent of
nations; and the high-minded Roman was dismissed without having been admitted
into his presence.
Theodosius did not
live to feel the effects of the anger of Attila, from whom it is probable that
he withheld the promised tribute in consequence of the exhausted state of his
finances, rather than a determination to brave his animosity. A fall from his
horse terminated the life of this inglorious and degraded emperor. His
sister Pulcheria, was proclaimed empress without opposition, although
there had been no previous instance of a female succeeding to the throne; and
the first act of her reign was the execution of Chrysaphius without a
legal trial, before the gates of Constantinople. Fearful however of swaying the
sceptre of the East without the support of a stronger arm at so critical a
period, she immediately espoused the senator Marcian, a Thracian about
sixty years of age, who had served with credit under Aspar and Ardaburius;
but, though she invested him by this political union with the imperial purple,
she compelled him in wedlock to respect the religious vow which she had made of
perpetual virginity.
As soon as Attila
heard of the accession of Marcian to the throne, he sent to demand
the stipulated tribute, but Marcian adopted a higher tone than his
predecessor, and replied that he did not hold himself bound by the humiliating
concessions of Theodosius; that he would send presents to him, if he kept the
peace, but, if he threatened war, he would oppose to him arms and men by no
means inferior to his own forces.
At this period the
intrigue of Honoria with Attila had been discovered, and had brought down upon
her the indignation and vengeance of either empire. The extract, which is
extant from the history of Priscus, relating to this subject, refers to a
previous relation of the circumstances which had taken place, but, that being
lost, their particulars can only be imperfectly collected or surmised from
subsequent allusions. At the voluptuous court of Ravenna, that princess
celebrated for her beauty and her incontinence, while she continued still under
the guardianship of Placidia her mother and her brother Valentinian,
in the very spring of her youth, sixteen years before this period, had been
found pregnant by her chamberlain Eugenius, and had been disgracefully sent
from thence to Constantinople, to be immured in the secluded chambers of Pulcheria the
sister of Theodosius, who had made a vow of singleness, and dwelt in a sworn
society of holy virgins. Weary of the monotonous and hopeless mode of life in
which her youth was thus passing away, under the tutelage of her harsh and
sanctified relation, she had probably at a much earlier period, made a tender
to Attila of her hand and pretensions to the throne of Rome, and that offer, to
which on his first accession to the throne, he had paid little attention, had
been renewed a little before this period, when his matured designs against the
empire rendered such an alliance important, as a ground whereon to rest his
claims.
The message was
carried to Attila by an eunuch dispatched by the princess secretly from
Constantinople with a letter and a ring, which he was instructed to deliver,
but the exact date of the occurrence is not recorded. At the moment of the
accession of Marcian to the throne, the correspondence of Honoria
with the Hun was by some accident brought to light. The unfortunate and guilty
princess was regarded with abhorrence by the Christians, and previously to her
being sent back to Italy and placed in strict confinement at Ravenna, she was
compelled to give her hand in marriage to some person who was selected for that
purpose, in order to render her union with Attila unlawful and impracticable.
The records are lost which would have informed us who and what the bridegroom
was, but it is pretty evident that the ceremony only was performed, and that
the marriage was not consummated; and as it was certainly not intended that she
should ever avail herself of the privileges of a married woman, the husband
selected for her was probably an obscure and perhaps a blind old man, for the
extinction of the eyes was the usual mode of disqualifying a man to wear the
imperial purple of Constantinople.
In the passage of
Priscus which is preserved, and which evidently refers to a detailed account of
the transactions, he says that when the things which had been done concerning
her were reported to Attila, he immediately sent ambassadors to Valentinian
emperor of the West, to assert that Honoria had been guilty of no unbecoming
conduct, inasmuch as he had entered into an engagement to marry her, and that
he would take up arms in her cause, unless she were admitted to hold the
sceptre of the empire. The Romans answered that it was not possible for him to
espouse Honoria, who had been given to another man, and that she had no right
to the throne, for the Roman dynasty consisted of a succession of males, and
not of females: an answer which singularly contrasts with the contemporaneous
and undisputed elevation of Pulcheria to the sister throne of
Byzantium, occasioned perhaps by some intrigues for the downfall of Chrysaphius.
The rejection of
the demands of Attila by Marcian had been softened by presents, and
probably the refusal of Honoria’s hand was accompanied by like appeasement.
According to the Alexandrine or Paschal chronicle, and to John of Antioch,
surnamed Malellas, Attila sent to either emperor a Gothic messenger,
saying, “My lord and yours commands you through me to make ready your palace
for his reception”. Malellas mentions Theodosius, who was dead at
this time; but the account is probably referable to the simultaneous summons
which he sent to Constantinople and Rome immediately after the death of that
emperor.
The views of
Attila extended to the subjugation of the Medes and Persians, the Eastern and
Western empires, and the Gothic and Franc kingdoms in France and Spain, which
would have left him without a rival between the boundaries of China, or at
least of the Tartars, and the Atlantic ocean : but he was awhile doubtful
against which of those powers he should first turn his arms. Genseric the
formidable king of the Vandals, who had wrested from Rome her African
possessions, excited him to attack Theodoric king of the Visigoths, whose
capital was Tolosa, the modern Toulouse. The daughter of Theodoric
had been married to Hunneric the son of the Vandal monarch, who
was so savage in his disposition, and inhuman even towards his own offspring,
that on a bare suspicion that she had mixed poison for him, he cut off her
nostrils and sent her back mutilated to her father. Fearing therefore the
vengeance of Theodoric, he exerted himself by negotiation and ample presents to
draw upon his antagonist the overwhelming armies of the Hun. The
subsidy offered by Genseric probably determined Attila to commence his
operations by the subjugation of Gaul, where he would have to attack
the Francs of Meroveus, the Alans under Sangiban, the Gallic empire
of Theodoric extending from his capital Tolosa into Spain,
and the Roman province which was defended by the flower of the Roman
army under the celebrated Aetius. The pretext for this invasion was
the restitution of Alberon, the son and rightful heir of Clodion lately
deceased, to the throne of his father in the north of France, from whence he
had been expelled by the arts of the bastard Meroveus. Previous to his
undertaking this memorable expedition, Attila held a plenary court or comitia
in Thuringia at Erfurt, (for Eisenach, which has been named as the place where
they were held, is perhaps a town of later origin) probably for the especial
purpose of hearing the plaint of Basina the widow of Clodion, who had fled with
her sons to the court of her brother Basinus in Thuringia.
Eudoxius, a
physician, had been drawn into a faction of rebels in Gaul, who, being pushed
to extremities by the extortions of the nobles and clergy, had first revolted
in the reign of Diocletian under the denomination of Bagauds, and had
since made head under the guidance of Tibato against the Roman
authority. They were everywhere defeated and severely handled, and Eudoxius was
the only man of importance amongst the movers of that sedition who escaped, and
he took refuge at the Hunnish court. He is described as a bad, but
able, man; and from him it is supposed that Attila received much information
concerning the actual state of Gaul, and encouragement to attempt its invasion.
It is observable, that the organization of the faction called Bagauds seems
to have been the only popular attempt to vindicate civil rights under the
domination of the Western emperors.
Meroveus, against
whom the arms of Attila were now directed, was the illegitimate son of Clodion,
and his master of the horse. The dynasty of the Marcomirians ended
with Clodion the son of Pharamond and grandson of Marcomir; and
Meroveus, a traitor, an usurper, and alien to the blood royal, being
illegitimate, founded a new dynasty. Fredegarius, writing in 641, says
that the mother of Meroveus was bathing on the coast and was attacked by a
sea-monster, who became the father of Meroveus. This fable has evident relation
to his illegitimacy. The writer who there cites Fredegarius from
Gregory of Tours considers the Marobudos or Maroboduus who
lived in the time of Augustus and Tiberius to have been an earlier Meroveus,
the former name being the Augustan, the latter the recent Gallo-Latin version
of the Teutonic name Maerwu or Merwu. He also shows that the
Merovingian kings called themselves by that title, (which makes it appear that
they affected to be a new dynasty, and not inheritors from Clodion) by
authorities dating AD 641 as above, AD 645
and 720, the last being thirty years before the restoration of the rightful
heirs by the elevation of Pepin.
Mezeray states
that Clodion left three sons (the eldest having died) Alberon, Regnault,
and Rangcaire, who were too young to reign, and therefore the states
elected Meroveus his bastard son. He boasts of his exploits in the Catalaunian victory,
of which he attributes the principal honour to him, but entirely suppresses the
cause of that war, which was to re-establish the rightful king whom he had
expelled: and he adds incorrectly that, when firmly fixed in Gaul, he went to
succour the sons of Clodion and establish them in Hainault, Brabant, and Namur;
saying that on his return from that expedition he died in the tenth year of his
reign in 458.
The historian
Priscus, who was at the court of Attila on an embassy in 448, when Clodion was
alive or on the point of death, never saw Alberon the rightful heir,
who had not at that time had recourse to the Huns. At some antecedent period
not ascertained, he had however seen Meroveus on an embassy at Rome, a
beardless youth with long yellow hair falling over his shoulders, and he says
that Aetius, having adopted him as his son and loaded him with gifts,
despatched him to the emperor to acquire his friendship and enjoy his society
in martial exercises. There is some obscurity however in the passage, for
the word presbenúmenos, acting the part of a legate,
must apply to a mission from the Francs, and could not refer to his visit at
the court of Valentinian under the
recommendation of the Roman general Aetius.
It seems
that Priscus meant that Meroveus was at Rome as an ambassador when he saw him,
and was at some subsequent period sent by Aetius to carouse with Valentinian,
probably at Ravenna.
Looking to the
subtle character and constant double dealing of Aetius, it can scarcely be
doubted, that when he adopted Meroveus and sent him to Valentinian, he had
intended to sow future dissensions in the family of Clodion, and to make use of
Meroveus for the furtherance of his own schemes, whether against the
inheritance of the Franc king or against the throne of Valentinian, or, as is
most probable, against both: and, in directing him to be presented to the
emperor as the son of Clodion, with a view to the acquisition of his society
and friendship, it is not likely that either Aetius or Meroveus should have put
forward his illegitimacy; nor was it probable that Priscus, a Greek sophist of
Constantinople, accidentally seeing this beardless young Franc at Rome, should
have been informed at the time of his spurious birth. When Meroveus seized the
throne and expelled Alberon who fled to the Huns, it was a matter of
notoriety to all Europe that Alberon was the rightful heir and eldest
son of Clodion, and if Priscus was not aware of the illegitimacy of Meroveus,
he must have concluded that he was younger than him to whom the inheritance
appertained. His silence as to the name of the banished king is proof that he
had not very ample information concerning the transaction, and perhaps only
knew the little which he states; and, living at Constantinople far from the
scene of action, he may have fallen very naturally into an error on the point
of seniority. If Meroveus had succeeded to the throne of his lawful father,
though to the prejudice of an elder brother, his accession would not have been
that of a new dynasty, and, instead of being called Merovingian kings, he and
his descendants would from the first have been named after Pharamond the
sire or Marcomir the grandsire of Clodion.
The brief
expression therefore of Priscus, that the elder son of Clodion sought the
assistance of the Huns, the younger that of Aetius, is insufficient to outweigh
the far greater probability of the fact as related by other writers, that
Meroveus was in fact the oldest, though not the legitimate, son of Clodion. The
lineal genealogy runs thus:— 1. Marcomir.—2. Pharamond.—3. Clodion
who died 448.—4. Alberon, d.491.—5. Wambert, d. 529—6. Ambert,
d. 570. (collateral Wambert 2.)—7. Arnold, d. 601.—8. St. Arnulf, d.
641.—9. Ansegisus, d. 685.— 10. Pepin, d. 714.—11. Charles Martell, d.
741.—12. Pepin, d. 768.—13. Charlemagne, and so on, till the occupation of the
throne by Hugh Capet in 987, when the Marcomirian line became
extinct.
John Bertels abbot
of Epternach collected all the traditions and chronicles he could
find in the convents of Luxemberg and Ardennes. He states that
Clodion Capillatus married Basina daughter of Widelph duke
of the Thuringians, probably sister to Basinus who was duke when
Attila was in Thuringia. She bore him four sons, Phrison, Alberon or
Auberon, Reginald, and Rauchas. Phrison died very young of an
arrow-shot, and the grief of that loss hastened the death of his father.
Clodion by his will appointed his bastard son Meroveus, who was his master of
the horse, to be regent and guardian of his sons.
For some years he
acted with fidelity, but when the Roman arms were pressing on the Francs, he
tendered his resignation, declining the responsibility of administering the
affairs of another person in such a crisis, and knowing that his authority and
skill were necessary at the moment. The result was conformable to his
expectations. The Francs proclaimed him king, and he took the crown, whereupon
queen Basina sent her three sons for safety to Thuringia. Some years
afterwards Alberon took counsel how he should recover his rights and
destroy Meroveus and his progeny; Meroveus at the same time meditating the like
against him and his kindred.
With these
views Alberon married Argotta daughter of Theodemir king
of the Goths, formed a strict alliance with the Goths, Vandals, Bohems,
and Ostrogoths, and by their aid recovered possession of Arduenna, Lower
Alsatia, Brabantia, Cameracum, and Turnacum, and obtained the
title of Rex Cameracensis. His chief residence however was in the Nemus Carbonarium,
a part of the forest of Ardennes, where he sacrificed to idols and fortified
Mons Hannoniae (Mons in Hainault), as an asylum against the malice of
Meroveus. Argotta bore him Wambert, who married a daughter of
the emperor Zeno.
A lieutenant
under Clovis conquered Brabant and Flanders about the year 492, and took
king Alberon and his two brothers prisoners, whom the French king
barbarously slew with his own hand, as soon as they were brought into his
presence. He afterwards affected remorse, and endeavoured to allure Wambert into
his power, in order to cut off the last remnant of Clodion’s legitimate
heirs. Wambert was however too wary, and placed his sons Wambert and Anselbert (or Ambert),
under the safeguard of Theodoric king of Italy and the emperor Zeno who made
them senators of the Eastern empire.
About AD 520 Wambert recovered
Ardennes and Hainault, to which possessions the senator Wambert the
second succeeded on his death in 528, by favour of Childebert king of
Paris, who also gave Anselbert the marquisate of Moselle and Scheld,
of which the seat of government was on the latter river. The senator Wambert,
who espoused St. Clotilda daughter of Almeric king of Italy, was
succeeded by a third Wambert his son.
Such is the
statement of Bertels. The only inaccuracy, which appears on the face of
it, is that the events, which took place between the death of Clodion in 448,
and the flight of Alberon to the Huns previous to Attila’s invasion
of Gaul in 451, a space of only three years, appear to be extended over a
longer, though indefinite, period. With this limitation, that Meroveus could
not have continued faithful above two years, and that Alberon immediately
sought assistance to recover his rights, there is no reason to doubt that the
account of Bertels is substantially correct. He was unacquainted
with the writings of Priscus, and appears to have known nothing about Attila
and his Huns; yet, except what relates to the inferior age of Meroveus, he
affords collateral evidence from quite different sources, which is confirmed by
the account of the Greek sophist; for it is evident that the Goths, with
whom Bertels states Alberon to have made alliance, were the
great confederacy of nations headed by Attila and brought by him on the
occasion of the disputed succession of Clodion into the celebrated field of
Châlons.
The Thuringian
writers of the middle ages make mention of the movements of Attila, and state
that he was in Thuringia and at Eisenach. The Danish writer, professor Suhm,
referring to the Thuringian authors, states his disbelief of the existence of
Eisenach in the days of Attila, and thinks that Erfurt, anciently called Bicurgium,
was the place intended. Sidonius Apollinaris mentions Toringus (the
Thuringian) amongst the people who invaded Belgium under the command of Attila.
German histories unknown to Bertelius and only seen in MS. by Lazius,
affirm that Attila held a diet of his kings and dukes in Thuringia before he
set out to invade Gaul. Putting these concurrent accounts together, it seems
that Attila held a diet in Thuringia, where he heard the plaint of queen Basina
and her sons, and proceeded to act thereupon. Henning in his Universal
Genealogy gives the following statement: Clodio crinitus had,
by …, Meroveus, who married Verica daughter of Guntraum king of
Sweden, and died AD 458, and by Basina daughter of Widelph king
of Thuringia Albero or Alberic from whom the Carolingians
are descended, Rauches or Roches lord of Cambray, and Reginald king
of the Eburi who married Wamberga daughter of Alaric the
first king of the Visigoths in Spain. Albero warred under Attila,
hoping to recover the sceptre of his father, of which his brother Meroveus had
taken forcible possession. Being defeated he retreated to his own people,
(meaning his Belgic or Cameracan subjects) being careful not to fall
into the hands of Meroveus, and died about 491.
Brother James of
Guise relates that Clodion king of the Francs had by his wife, daughter of the
king of Austrien (Austracia) and Toringien, four sons. He made a
certain Meroveus his master of the horse. Soon after, besieging Soissons, he
lost his eldest son, and, being much afflicted, died also. Previously he
assembled his nobles, and assigned to his wife and each of his three remaining
sons their portions, and gave them into the keeping of Meroveus. Meroveus
enlarged the kingdom by conquest; afterwards, some enemies invading it, he said
to the people, “I am not your king, and I will no longer be the guardian, for I
have already incurred more cost than I can pay; therefore provide for the
country as you will”. Consequently the Francs raised him to the throne. He
straightway summoned all the soldiers that were on furlough, and drove out the
enemy. The widow of Clodion, with two of her sons, fled to Thuringia and Austracia.
When big enough, they redemanded the kingdom, and had some combats with
Meroveus. By the assistance of the Huns, Goths, Ostrogoths, Armoricans,
Saxons, and many others, they won back from Meroveus the lands their father had
assigned them, beginning from Austracia to the Alsatic mountains,
and from the south of Burgundy to the Rhine, and westward to Rheims, Laon,
Cambray, and Tournay, and on the north to the ocean, which kingdom was molested
by Meroveus and many others. From Clodion’s three sons, Aubron, Regnauld,
and Rauchaure, the rulers of Hainault, Loraine, Brabant, and Namur, took
their origin. Clodion was buried at Cambray in 448 according to the rites of
the “Sarrazins”. He adds that many opinions existed touching Meroveus.
According to Sigebert he
was the son of Clodion; Andreas Marcianensis styled him his kinsman (son afin,
meaning affinis); l’histoire des Francois states
that he was not his son, but nevertheless descended from the Trojans, and that
he was a useful king, from whom were derived the Francs called Merovingians,
who held the kingdom against the heirs of Clodion. Almericus states
that after Bleda’s death, the widow of Clodion made alliance with the
Huns and Ostrogoths, gave them a part of her land, and waged war against
Meroveus. Brother James continues to say that in 453 (he should have said 451)
Attila, accompanied by Walamir king of the Ostrogoths, and Arderic king
of the Gepidae, and many of their dependants from the quarter of the
wind aquilon, left Pannonia and invaded Gaul. Alberic or Aubron,
second son of Clodion, was a man of such subtlety, knowledge, activity, and
prowess, that he often worsted the Merovingians, who usurped and held his
country.
He commonly
sojourned in the woods, and sacrificed to Gods and Goddesses, and
re-established the pagan worship in his territories, for he thought the Gods in
whom he trusted would give him back his kingdom; because Mars and Jove had once
appeared to him, and declared that to himself, or to his lineage, all the
dominions of his father should be restored. Thereupon he began assiduously to
rebuild the decayed cities and castles, Strasburg which was dismantled of
walls, Thulle, Espinal, Mereasse, and the leaden baths at Espinal; in
the forest of Dogieuse a castle and temples; near the Alsatic mountains
and forests the same; in the centre of his kingdom in Ardenne, the altar,
temple, and castle of Namur; the temple of Mercury, now chateau Sanson,
and other impregnable forts; in the forêt Carbonière many, such
as Chateaulieu, where on the mount he built a square tower, and called it
from himself Aubron.
On the same mount,
near the town, he dug a well which is still there. He built a temple of Minerva
on a hill, now mount St. Audebert, but then mount Auberon, but which the
Christians now call La Houppe Auberon; in the forest of Dicongue a
temple of the idol, and called it by his own name. By the aid of the Saxons he
beat the Merovingians in the forêt Carboniere near Chateaulieu,
now called Monts en Haynau, and he named the spot Merowinge,
and the inhabitants now call it Meuwin. He beat them again at a place
called Mirewault, and the Merovingians said the Gods of the forest gave
him victory, and thereupon remained a long time at peace with him. They styled
him enchanteur of feu. He had several children; the
eldest Waubert, who was king of the Austracians, and inherited all
his father’s lands and defended them valiantly. Aubron died old, and
was buried with Sarrazin rites in the mount called La Houppe Auberon,
upon which great trees are now planted.
Clovis invaded the
lands of the king of Cambray called Rauchaire, brother of Auberon, and at
last he and his brothers Richier and Regnault, were betrayed
into his power, and slain by his own hand; and he persecuted their connections.
Here is an evident blunder, in the calling Rauchaire instead of
Auberon, king of Cambray, and then to make up the number, repeating the
name Rauchaire with a difference of orthography, as Richier, and
thus making five sons of Basina, instead of four, the eldest having been killed
at the siege of Soissons in the life-time of Clodion.
The history thus
given contains ample confirmation to the relation of Bertels, with a
similar protraction of the period between the death of Clodion, and the attempt
of Alberon to recover his throne, which is in some degree accounted
for by placing in 453 the Hunnish invasion, which actually took place
in 451. That Meroveus did not pretend to be the legitimate son of Clodion, is
evident from the expression of Gregory Tours, who flourished in the next
century, and might even hate conversed with persons who had seen Meroveus, and
merely says that he was “as some assert, of the stock of Clodion”.
No reliance can be
placed on the relation of any French writer of later times, for, without citing
any satisfactory authorities, they all avoid the true point, and falsify the
history, so strangely does nationality and a desire to make out the dynasty of
their kings to have been legitimate appear to have warped and prejudiced their
understandings; in the same manner that we find the Danish historians when they
meet with the name of Attila king of the Huns, in their most ancient legends of
events, which they themselves refer to the exact period of his Gallic invasion,
shutting their eyes against the true history, and saying that this Attila was a
petty king over some Huns in Groningen, because they will not acknowledge that
which Priscus, who was personally acquainted with Attila, asserts, that his
dominion extended to the Baltic or islands of the ocean, and consequently that
he was, as appears also from the title he assumed, king of the Danes.
That Meroveus was
received at Rome as the son of Clodion, is clear by the testimony of Priscus;
that he was illegitimate and older than the rightful heir, is established by
the local chronicles and the greater probability of the fact. Whether Alberon was
put to death as well as his brothers by Clovis, or fell in the previous battle,
and was buried in the Houppe d’ Aubron, appears to be a matter
of some doubt, which perhaps might be solved at this day, by opening the
supposed place of his interment; but it is not improbable that his name affixed
to that mount, as a monumental cenotaph, may have given birth to the notion
that he was buried there, and occasioned the omission of his name in some of
the accounts of the atrocious act of Clovis, especially as there is no other
tradition of the manner of his death, though so many particulars of his life are
recorded.
When Attila had
determined to march his army into Gaul, he exerted himself to sow disunion
between the Visigoths and Romans. He sent ambassadors to Valentinian to assure
him in a letter full of blandishment that he had no hostile intentions against
the Roman power in that country, but was marching against Theodoric, and
requested that the Romans would not take part against him. To Theodoric he
wrote at the same time, exhorting him to detach himself from his alliance with
the Romans, and to remember the wars which they had lately stirred up against
him. Thereupon the emperor wrote to Theodoric urging him to act in union with
him against the common enemy, “who wished to reduce the whole world to slavery;
who sought no pretext for invasion, but held whatever his arm could execute to
be just and right; who grasped at everything within his compass, and satiated
his licentiousness with excess of pride”. He represented to the Visigoth that
he ruled over a limb of the Roman empire, and exhorted him for his own security
to unite with the Romans in defending their common interests.
Theodoric replied,
“Ye have your wish; ye have made Attila and me enemies. We will encounter him,
whithersoever he shall call us, and, although he may be inflated by diverse
victories over proud nations, haughty as he is, the Goths will know how to
contend with him. I call no warfare grievous, except that which its cause
renders weak, for he, on whom majesty has smiled, has no reverse to fear”.
The chiefs of the
Gothic court applauded this spirited answer, of which however the last words do
not convey any very definite meaning. The people shouted and followed him, and
the Visigoths were animated by an ardent desire to measure their strength with
the conqueror of so many nations.
In the spring of
451 Attila put his immense army in motion to effect the invasion of Gaul. Many
of the nations that marched under him are enumerated by Sidonius;
the Neuri, who are stated by Ammianus Marcellinus to have dwelt amongst
the Alans in their former situations; the Hoedi, whom Valesius asserts
to have been a tribe of Huns; the Gepides, Ostrogoths, Alans, Bastarnae, Turcilingi, Scirri, Heruli, Rugi, Bellonoti, Sarmatae, Geloni, Scevi, Burgundiones,
Quadi, Marcomanni, Savienses or Suavi, Toringi, (Thuringians)
the Franks who bordered on the river Vierus, and the Bructeri, who
were considered to be allied to the Francs in blood. Aventhius mentions
also the Boii, Suevi, and Alemanni under king Gibuld. In Henning’s
Genealogies it is said that a hundred nations marched under Attila. This
immense army pursued its course south of the Danube, and passed through Noricum
and the northern part of Rhaetia, that is to say the southern parts of Bavaria
and Swabia. His northern vassals the Rugians, Quadi, Marcomanni, Thuringians,
and other tribes followed, it seems, a more northerly course, having directions
to form a junction with him on the Rhine.
Near the lake of
Constance he was probably opposed by and routed a portion of the Burgundians,
who were in the interest of Aetius, and attempted to prevent him from passing
the Rhine. Aventinus says that he slew on that occasion their
kings Gundaric and Sigismund, which does not appear to be correct, at
least with respect to Gundaric.
The forests of
Germany, almost indiscriminately called Hercynian, furnished him with timber to
construct vessels or rafts, on which the immense multitude, which constituted
his army, was transported across the Rhine. Strasburg probably first felt the
effects of his fury, and was levelled to the ground. At a later period, a
figure of Attila is said to have been placed over the gate of that town. Some
writers have asserted, that Metz (Divodurum Mediomatricorum) was the first
place that he destroyed; thither he certainly proceeded and burnt the town,
butchering its inhabitants, and the very priests at the altars. His march was
directed towards the Belgian territory, and, having sacked Treves on his route,
he overwhelmed the north of France, destroying whatever resisted him.
Whether Tongres and Maastricht were destroyed before or after the
battle of Châlons, is not certain. No effectual resistance could be offered to
him by the Francs under Meroveus, and Alberon was speedily reinstated
in the greater part of the kingdom of Clodion.
At this time
Aetius, having expected that Theodoric would have made head against Attila, and
probably wishing that they might weaken each other by the collision, his own
forces remaining untouched, while Attila was overrunning all Belgium, had
scarcely crossed the Alps, leading with him a small and very inefficient force.
But intelligence was brought to him of the unexampled successes of Attila, and that
the Visigoths, appearing to despise the Huns, whom they had formerly beaten
when subsidized by Litorius, were awaiting in their own territory the
attack of the invader, if he should think fit to bear down upon them.
The active mind of
Aetius was equal to the arduous position in which he stood. He immediately
dispatched Avitus to urge Theodoric to draw out his force without
delay and form a junction with him. His exertions were great and rapid to
collect a force sufficient to make head against the conqueror, who was already
preparing to fall upon the south of France. Theodoric, accompanied by his
two eldest sons Torismond and Theodoric, took the field, having
ordered his four younger sons to remain at Tolosa, to which he himself was
not destined to return. The wonderful genius and activity of Aetius, when it
suited his views to bestir himself, was never more conspicuous than on this
occasion, when he speedily brought together a force equal to that of the Hun.
In the allied army the Visigoths of Theodoric, the Alans of king Sangiban,
the Francs of Meroveus, Sarmatians, Armoricans, Burgundians, Saxons, Litiarii, Riparioli,
and several other German and Celtic nations were united with the Romans.
Although the affairs of Attila are conspicuous in the Northern legends, it is
observable that, in the vast concourse of tribes pouring into France from every
quarter of Europe, no mention is made by any writer of Danes, for this simple
reason that there was in truth no such nation at that period, other than the
Dacians from the Danube, notwithstanding the assertions of Danish historians.
The attack of
Paris did not fall within the line of Attila’s operations, and the Christians
subsequently attributed the salvation of that city to the merits of St.
Genevieve; but Paris was not then a great metropolis. The late king Clodion had
had his principal seat at Dispargum, supposed by some to have been
Louvain, but probably Duysberg on the right bank of the Rhine. It was
apparently one of the effects of Attila’s invasion, by detaching Cambray,
Hainault, and the rest of the Belgic provinces from the kingdom of Meroveus, to
make Paris become the seat of his government. Tolosa, the flourishing
capital of Theodoric the Visigoth, was an object of superior importance to
Attila. He had already, in pursuance of his intentions, reduced again under the
authority of Alberon the greater part of the Belgic portion of
the kingdom of the Francs; and his promises to make a powerful diversion in
favour of Genseric king of the Vandals in Africa, and his own ambitious views,
pointed to the south of France. His main force was therefore directed
against Orleans; from whence, if he had been successful, he would have
undoubtedly continued f his victorious course towards the Gothic metropolis, or Arelas the
principal city of the Roman province.
We know not to
whom the military defence of Orleans was entrusted. Sangiban, king of the
Alans, who occupied the neighbourhood of the Loire, was at that time in
Orleans, but he does not appear to have had the command of the garrison. In the
history of these times, whether relating to the Gallic war, or the invasion of
Italy, we hear more of the bishop of the place, who seems generally to have
taken upon himself the chief conduct of affairs, than of any military prefect;
partly, perhaps, because the details which have reached us have been chiefly
transmitted through ecclesiastics. To the bishop, therefore, has been generally
attributed both the vigour that defended, and the treason that surrendered to
the pagan, the fortresses of the Roman empire; the traitors and the martyrs
seem to have found a place equally in the calendar of saints. Anianus,
since called St. Aignan, held the see of Orleans, when the immense force
of Attila proceeded to invest it. He made every disposition for a stout
defence, encouraged the people and the garrison to put their confidence in God,
without relaxing their efforts, and despatched a trusty messenger to Aetius,
urging him to advance immediately to his relief.
The operations of
the Hun were perhaps impeded for a few days by unseasonable weather, but his
engines battered the town with irresistible force, and it seemed as if nothing
but the direct interposition of Providence could save the town and its
inhabitants from the terrible chastisement, which Attila never failed to
inflict upon those who presumed to defend themselves. Bishop Anian prayed,
and prayed, and prayed; but the walls were shaken by the force of the battering
rams, the garrison were driven from the battlements by the Hunnish archery, and
the battlements themselves crumbled under the repeated shocks of the blocks of
stone that were hurled by the machines of the besiegers. He sent his attendant
to look out and report whether he saw anything in the distance. The answer was,
no. Again he sent him, and nothing was distinguishable.
A third time, and
he reported, like the messenger of Elijah, that a little cloud was rising on
the plain. The bishop shouted to the people, that it was the aid of God, and
throughout the whole town there was a cry of the aid of God, mingled with the
shrieks of women; for at that very instant the Huns were scaling the breach and
actually in the town, and in a few moments the city would have been a blazing
and bloody example of barbarian vengeance. But Attila had seen the little cloud
that was advancing in the distance, and recognized the dust that was raised by
the rapid advance of the Gothic cavalry, which formed the van of the army of
Aetius. Instantly he saw the danger of exposing his troops to the attack of a powerful
enemy under that consummate general, amidst the disorganization which must
accompany the sack of a populous city, which was on the point of being
delivered up to plunder; and at the very instant when Orleans was taken, and
the work of violation and massacre was on the point of commencing, the
successful assailants were astonished by the signal for a retreat.
The deliverance
was attributed by the Christians to the direct interposition of Providence,
obtained by the faith and supplications of their priest.
Attila did not
think it expedient to await the attack of Aetius before the walls of a hostile
town, and, having learned the strength of the allied army, he retreated to the
great plains of Champagne which took their name from Catalaunum,
the modern Châlons upon Marne, and by that movement he probably fell back upon
his own resources and concentrated his forces, for it is not likely that the
whole of his enormous army should have been in the lines before Orleans. He
knew that he had to contend with a general of great skill, a king of approved
valour, and an army equal to his own in numbers and warlike habits.
Upon the plain of
Châlons was then to be decided the fate of Europe; the combatants there
assembled had been drawn together from the immense tract of country which
reaches from the straits of Gibraltar to the Caspian sea. It is impossible in
our days to approach the consideration of this contest without bringing to mind
that nearly fourteen centuries after this great event, the armies of the same immeasurable
line of territory were to be again assembled on the same plain, and under
circumstances very similar, for the overthrow of the only individual who has
arisen since that day, resembling Attila in his character, in his success, in
his mode of acting and his views of universal dominion; that both were
defeated, and both came forth again to be the terror of Europe in one more
final campaign.
On his retrograde
march towards Châlons, a circumstance is said to have occurred, which, if it
was not, as may be suspected, a politic contrivance of his own, was at least
adroitly put forward by Attila, for the purpose of increasing the terror of his
name, an object of peculiar importance at the moment of a retreat.
A Christian hermit
was brought to him, who had been urgent for admittance to his presence,
and addressed him at length, assuring him that God, on account of the
iniquities of his people, which he fully detailed, placed the sword in his
hand, which, when they should have returned to a sound state, he would resume
and give to another. He said to him “You are the scourge of God, for the
chastisement of the Christians”, and added that he would be unsuccessful in the
battle he was about to fight, but that the kingdom would not pass out of his
hands.
From this moment
Attila appears to have assumed the title of Scourge of God, which accorded with
his views of oversetting the Christian religion, and establishing his own right
to universal dominion upon the grounds of a heavenly delegation. He had long pretended
to be the holder of that sword, which was regarded either as the God itself, or
the symbol of the principal God which the Scythian nations worshipped.
The title which he
now assumed, appears to have furnished a pretext to insincere Christians, under
the specious garb of humility and resignation to the chastisement of the
Almighty, to betray into his hands the places which they should have defended;
and, in an age so prone to superstition, it is not unlikely that it may have
influenced many devout Christians to yield to him without offering any
resistance. Attila, having heard the prediction of the hermit, consulted his
own soothsayers, of whom there was always a multitude with his army.
According to their
custom, they inspected the entrails of cattle, and certain veins which were
distinguished upon the bones after they had been scraped, and after due
deliberation they announced to him an unfavourable issue of the battle, but
consoled him by the assurance that the principal leader of his enemies would perish
in the engagement.
Attila is said to
have understood that the prediction pointed to Aetius, whose loss would have
been irreparable to the Romans. He therefore determined to give battle to the
allies at a late hour of the day, that he might reap the advantage awarded to
him by the prophecy with as little loss as possible, and that the approach of
night might screen his army from the reverse which he had reason to expect. He
is said to have proposed a truce which was refused by Aetius. It is not improbable
that the predictions of his soothsayers may have caused him to hesitate, and
he was perhaps desirous of a few more days to collect the forces which he might
have left in Belgium.
In the night
preceding the great battle, an important collision took place between 90,000 of
the Francs on the side of the Romans, and of the Gepidae who formed
an important part of the Hunnish army, and many on both sides had
fallen. Whatever hesitation Attila might have felt in the first instance,
he acted with his usual decision when the hour arrived, which was to decide the
fate of Western Europe. The hostile armies lay close to each other on an
extensive plain, which stretched 150,000 paces in length, and above
100,000 in breadth.
The forces of
Attila were on the left, the Romans on the right of a sloping hill, which
either army was desirous of occupying on account of the advantage of the
position. Aetius commanded the left wing of the allies, with the troops
that were in the service of the emperor. Theodoric with his Goths formed
the right, and Sangiban with his Alans was placed in the centre, so
surrounded as to prevent his withdrawing himself, since he was regarded with
suspicion, and known to be fearful of incurring the vengeance of Attila, and he
was probably supported by the Francs.
Attila with his
Huns, surrounded by a bodyguard of chosen troops, commanded in the centre of
his army. His wings were composed of various subject nations, led by their
several kings, amongst whom the Ostrogothic brothers Walamir, Theodemir,
and Widimir, were conspicuous, distinguished not only by their valour, but
by the nobility of their descent, being joint-heirs of the illustrious race of
the Amali.
But the most renowned
amongst them was Arderic, who led into the field an innumerable force
of Gepidae, and commanded the right wing. Attila placed the greatest
confidence in his fidelity, and relied much upon his advice. He shared the
favour of the Hun with Walamir, who was the eldest and principal king of
the Ostrogoths, and highly valued for his sagacity. Walamir commanded
the left wing which was opposed to Theodoric. But Attila was the soul of his
army; the numberless kings, who served under his orders, attended like satellites
to his nod, observed the least motion of his eye, and were ever prompt to
execute his commands.
The battle
commenced with a struggle for the possession of the higher ground, which was as
yet unoccupied. Attila directed his troops to advance to its summit, but Aetius
had anticipated his movement, and, having gained possession of it, by the
advantage of the ground easily routed the Huns who were advancing, and drove
them down the hill. Attila quickly rallied the Huns, and encouraged them by a
harangue, in which he said that he should think it a vain thing to inspirit
them by words, as if they were ignorant of their duty, and novices in war,
after having vanquished so many nations, and actually subdued the world, if
they did not suffer what they had won to be wrested from them. A new leader
might resort to, and an inexperienced army might require, such exhortations;
but it neither became them to hear, nor him to address to them, words of trite
and common encouragement; for to what had they been habituated, if not to
warfare? what could be sweeter to brave men than vengeance, the greatest of the
gifts of nature?
“Let us
therefore”, he said, “attack the enemy briskly. The assailants are always the
stoutest-hearted. Despise the junction of separate nations; to seek
alliances betrays weakness. See even now, before the attack, the enemy are
panic-stricken; they seek the elevated places, they take possession of the
mounds, and, repenting of their hardihood, they are already desirous of finding
fortifications in the open plain. The lightness of the Roman arms is known
to you; I will not say that they are overpowered by the first wounds, but by
the very dust. While they are assembling in line and locking their shields, do
you fight after your own manner with excellent spirit, and despising their
array, attack the Alans, overwhelm the Visigoths. We must win the repose of
victory by destroying the sinews of war; the limbs drop, when the nerves are
cut through, and a body cannot stand when the bones are taken from it. Huns,
let your spirits rise; put forth all your skill and all your prowess. Let
him, who is wounded, demand of his comrade the death of his
antagonist; let him, who is untouched, satiate himself with the
slaughter of enemies. No weapons will harm those who are doomed to
conquer; those who are to die would be overtaken even in repose by their
destiny. Why should fortune have made the Huns victorious over so many
nations, unless the glory of this contest had been reserved for them?
Who opened the passage of the Maeotian swamp to our ancestors, so
many centuries shut up and secret? Who enabled them, when as yet unarmed, to
defeat their armed adversaries? An allied assemblage will not be able to
resist the countenance of the Huns. I am not deceived; this is the field
which so many successes have promised to us. I myself will throw the first
darts at the enemy, and if any one of you can endure repose while Attila is
fighting, he wants the energy of life”.
By such
exhortations the wonted spirit of his soldiers was renewed, and well may it be
seen, by the tenor of his language, how absolute was his control over the
various kings, of whose subjects his army was composed, when he could thus
publicly contrast the unity of his own force, with the weakness of an allied confederacy.
They rushed impetuously onward, and, though the posture of affairs under the
disadvantage of ground was formidable, the presence of Attila prevented any
hesitation; they engaged hand to hand with the enemy. The contest was fierce,
complicated, immense, and obstinate, to which, according to the assertion of
Jordanes, the records of antiquity presented nothing similar. That historian,
who wrote about a century after, says that he heard from old men, that a
rivulet which traversed the plain was swollen by blood into the appearance of a
torrent, and that those, who were tormented by thirst and the fever of their
wounds, drank blood from its channel for their refreshment. In the heat of the
battle Theodoric riding along the ranks and animating his Visigoths, was
knocked off his horse, as it was reported, by the dart of Andages an
Ostrogoth in the army of Attila. In the confusion his own cavalry charged over
him, and he was trampled to death. It appears that the Ostrogoths, who formed
the left wing of the Huns, were overpowered by this charge and gave way, and
that the Visigoths advancing beyond the Alans, who were opposed to Attila in
the centre, had turned the position of the Huns, and threatened their flank and
rear; but, seeing the danger with which he was menaced, Attila immediately fell
back upon his camp, which was fenced round by his baggage wagons, behind which
the Hunnish archers presented an insurmountable obstacle to the
impetuosity of the Gothic cavalry. But the whole army did not retire behind
the defenses, and the Huns stood firm until it was dark; for Torismond,
the eldest son of Theodoric, who was not by his father’s side in the battle,
but had been stationed by the wary Aetius near his own person, probably as a
surety for the fidelity of Theodoric, and had at the first driven the Huns down
the hill in concert with the Romans, being separated from them afterwards, and
mistaking in the darkness the Hunnish troops for the main body of the
Visigoths, came unawares near the wagons, and fighting valiantly was wounded on
the head and knocked off his horse, and being rescued by his soldiers
discontinued the attack.
The superstition
of the combatants increased the horrors of a nocturnal conflict, and a
supernatural voice was supposed to have been heard by either army, which
terminated the conflict. While this advantage had been gained at night-fall by
the right wing of the allies, which had broken the left and forced the centre
of Attila’s army to fall back, the left wing under Aetius had been roughly
handled by Arderic, and separated from the main body of his forces.
Aetius, ignorant
of the success of his right and cut off from all communication with the rest of
his army, was in the greatest peril, and fearful that the Visigoths had been
overpowered. With difficulty he retreated to his camp, and passed the night
under arms, expecting his entrenchments to be attacked by a victorious enemy. A
most qualified victory it was, but certainly a victory, for the Visigoths did
carry the battle to the very camp of Attila, whose right wing, though
successful, did not pursue Aetius to his; but the singular result of this
engagement was, that each of the chief commanders passed the night under
momentary expectation of an assault from his antagonist. Attila, with the
desperate resolution of a pagan, made a vast pyre within the limits of his
encampment, which was piled up with harness, and such of the accoutrements of
his cavalry, as were not in immediate use, on which he had determined to burn
himself with his women and riches, in case his defenses should be
stormed, that he might not fall alive into the hands of his enemies, nor any
one of them boast of having slain him; but he presented a determined front to
the allies, and placed a strong force of armed men and archers in front of the
cars, keeping up at the same time an incessant din of warlike instruments to
animate his own troops, and alarm those of Aetius by the expectation of an
attack.
The dawn
discovered to both armies a plain absolutely loaded with the bodies of the
slain, and Aetius, perceiving that Attila stood on the defensive, and showed no
intention of advancing, became sensible of the successes of the former evening;
and, after he had communicated with the Visigoths, it was determined to attempt
to reduce Attila by a blockade, as the army of Stilicho had reduced the great
host of Radagais near Florence; for the fire of the Hunnish archers
was so hot, that they dared not attack him in his position.
But the victorious
Theodoric was missing, and no one amongst his troops could account for his
disappearance. Torismond and his brother instituted a search for his
body, and it was discovered amongst the thickest heaps of the slain. It was
borne in sight of the Huns with funereal songs to the camp of the Visigoths,
where his obsequies were celebrated with pompous ceremony and loud
vociferations, which seemed discordant to the ears of the polished Romans;
and Torismond was raised to the estate of a king upon the shield of
his forefathers. Having offered to his departed father all the honours, which
the customs of his countrymen required, he was ardently desirous of revenging
himself on Attila, and would gladly have bearded the lion in his den, but he
was not so rash as to attempt an attack with his Visigoths alone; and it was
necessary to consult with Aetius. That crafty politician, who appears at every
moment of his life to have played a double game, did not consider it for his
own advantage to renew the attack. The Huns had sustained such a severe loss of
men, that it was not probable that Attila would then renew his attempt either
to penetrate into the Roman province, or to conquer the kingdom of the
Visigoths. On the other hand, if he should succeed in utterly overpowering the
Hun, he dreaded to find a second Alaric in his grandson, who might prove not
less formidable to the empire.
His own views were
fixed upon the imperial purple, and the report, that he entered into secret
negotiations with Attila, after the battle of Châlons, with a view to his own
advancement, is probably correct. Being consulted by his young ally, he advised
him to forbear from renewing the attack, and to retire with his forces to his
own dominions, lest his younger brothers should take advantage of his absence
to possess themselves of his throne. With like craftiness, he persuaded
Meroveus rather to content himself with what remained to him of the kingdom of
Clodion, than to risk the consequence of another engagement, in the hope of
recovering the Belgian territory.
The loss of human
life in the battle is estimated at about 160,000 souls, and whether we look to
the numbers and prowess of the combatants, the immensity of the carnage, or its
consequences to the whole of Europe, it was undoubtedly one of the most
important battles that were ever fought.
When the retreat
of the Visigoths was first announced to Attila, he imagined that it was a
crafty device of the enemy to lure him into some rash undertaking, and he
remained for some time close in his camp; but when the utter and continued
silence of their late position convinced him that they had really withdrawn,
his mind was greatly elevated, and all his hopes of obtaining universal
dominion were instantly renewed. He was very boastful in his
language, and is said to have cried out, as soon as the departure of Torismond was
confirmed, “A star is falling before me and the earth trembling. Lo, I am
the hammer of the world”.
In that singular
expression will be recognized an allusion to the hammer of the God Thor, of
which the form is known to have been a cross, and in fact nearly identical with
that of the mysterious sword which Attila wore, reversing it so that the hilt
becomes the mallet and the blade the handle. He met with no further
opposition from any part of the allied army, from which it may be pretty surely
concluded that Aetius did enter into a secret arrangement with him, which,
though suspected, never became public, as Aetius did not communicate it to the
Romans. If we may judge from the result, the terms must have been that
Attila should not attack the Roman province or kingdom of Tolosa, but
should retain his Belgian conquests which were raised into the kingdom
of Cameracura for Alberon, and should not be molested by the
allies; to which we may suppose that Aetius added private terms to promote his
own elevation. It is probable that when, after the decease of Attila,
Valentinian caused Aetius to be put to death, he was apprised of his
treasonable plans, which were perhaps on the eve of being carried into
execution.
In order to remove
the impression of a defeat, Attila, having surveyed the field of battle, of
which he was ultimately left the master by the retreat of those who had
defeated him in a qualified manner, ordered a great sacrifice to be made
according to the practice of his nation, to the God Mars, that is to the sword
which he wore, and which was the visible personification of the
war-god. The fashion of that sacrifice was after this manner. They
raised a lofty square structure of faggots, measuring 375 paces on each of its
sides, three of which were perpendicular, but the fourth graduated, so that it
was easily ascended. In their regular stations such structures were renovated
every year by an accumulation of 150 wagon loads of brush-wood. On the
summit the ancient iron sword, which was symbolical of the war-god, was
planted. To that idol sheep and horses were sacrificed.
The sacrificator first
made fast a rope round the feet of the animal, and, standing behind it, by
pulling the rope threw it down, and thereupon invoking the God, he cast a
halter round its neck, and strangled it by twisting the rope with a stick; and
without either burning, or cutting, or sprinkling it, he immediately proceeded
to skin and cook it. In ancient times, when their state was very rude, and they
dwelt in extensive plains where fuel was very rare, they used the bones of the
animals for fuel, as the South Americans do at this day, and even the paunch of
the animal for a kettle. As soon as the beast was cooked, the sacrificator taking
the first share of the flesh and entrails, threw the rest before him. Of their
captives they sacrificed one chosen out of each hundred, not in the same manner
as the beasts, but having first poured wine on his head, they cut his throat,
and received the blood in a vessel, which they afterwards carried up to the
summit of the pile, and they emptied the blood upon the sword. They cut off the
right shoulder of each man that was thus slaughtered, together with the arm and
hand, and cast it into the air; and after the completion of their ceremonies
they departed, leaving the limb to lie wherever it happened to have fallen, and
the body apart from it Such was the mode in which the ancient Scythians had
sacrificed nine hundred years before; such were the rites by which the Huns had
celebrated their first successes in Europe, and by which Attila now returned
thanksgiving on the plain of Châlons for the retreat of the Christians.
Such was the man,
before whom the Christians trembled, and with whom the Arians and some other
sectarians are said to have been plotting for the destruction of the
Catholics. Ammianus Marcellinus had already testified, that in his time no
wild beasts were so blood-thirsty as the various denominations of Christians
against each other. Probably more with a view to wipe out the impression
of his retreat, and of the check which he had received, than of prosecuting the
invasion, he now moved forward again with his whole force, not in the direct
line to Orleans, but in a direction which appeared to threaten Orleans, and he
advanced against Troyes on the 29th of July. Lupus the bishop of that
place, and soon after sanctified, delivered up the town to Attila, and
prevailed upon him to spare the place and its inhabitants. He is said to
have gone out bareheaded, attended by his clergy and many of the citizens to
meet Attila, and to have asked him, who he was that subdued kings, overturned
nations, destroyed towns, and reduced everything under his subjection.
Attila replied, “I
am the king of the Huns and the scourge of God”. To which Lupus answered
saying, “Who shall resist the scourge of God, which may rage against whomsoever
he will! Come therefore, scourge of my God, proceed whithersoever you will; all
things shall obey you, as the minister of the Almighty, without impediment from
me”.
Attila marched
through the town without injuring it, and the Christian legends say that
the Huns were smitten with blindness, so that they passed on without
seeing anything, a miracle attributed to the sanctity of Lupus. That
hypocritical villain received, as the minister of his God, the barbarian whose
sword was reeking with the recent immolation of his Christian captives, and he
proceeded with Attila to the Rhine, and did not return to his diocese. His
panegyrists assert that Attila for the good of his own soul compelled Lupus to
accompany him. It is not unlikely that Attila may have thought that such a mock
Christian in high dignity might be useful to him, by inducing others to submit,
and the bishop probably thought that, after the part he had acted, he was
safest under Attila’s protection; not having anticipated, when he received the
Hun with such honours, that he would immediately afterwards retire from France.
He is eulogized
by Sidonius Apollinaris, soon after bishop of Clermont, whose praise
is perhaps not very valuable, and whose writings, very different from those
of Prudentius, as well as his name, bear the stamp rather of paganism than
of genuine Christianity. Attila thence changed the direction of his march and
returned to Pannonia. He certainly, however, left an organized force behind to
defend the Belgian kingdom of Cameracum against Meroveus, for Alberon and
his two brothers continued in possession of it, till they were defeated by the
army of Clovis (Louis), and subsequently massacred by him.
Having passed
through Troyes, Attila, seeing the people flying to the woods, had compassion
on them, and ordered them to return home without fear. A woman with one little
girl tied round her neck, two others on a pack-horse, and seven elder daughters
accompanying her on foot, cast herself at his feet and supplicated his
protection. It was the policy of Attila to treat with general clemency those
who threw themselves on his mercy, while he exterminated those who defied him,
and he was naturally good-natured, when his ambitious views were not thwarted.
He raised up the suppliant lady benignly, and dismissed her with assurances of
his favour, and ample gifts to enable her to educate and give marriage portions
to her daughters.
The Huns who were
left to defend and complete the reduction of Belgium are said to have
been commanded by Giulas, who commenced his career by the sack of Rheims,
of which the inhabitants had given great offence by harassing the Hunnish army
before the battle of Châlons. The citizens in extreme distress crowded round
their bishop Nicasius, imploring his advice in the fatal alternative of
hopeless resistance, or surrender to the certain vengeance of the
barbarians. Nicasius admonished them that the success of Attila was
permitted on account of their sins; but that they were destined to brief
torments in the hands of the tyrant to obtain salvation and heavenly life. He
exhorted them to follow and imitate his example.
His sister Eutropia,
a pious virgin of exceeding beauty, seconded his exhortations; and many of the
citizens animated by their enthusiastic piety accompanied them to the church of
the Virgin Mary, singing hymns and psalms, in the midst of which Nicasius was
butchered by the Huns. The beauty of Eutropia excited the desires of
the conqueror who had slain her brother, but she is said to have torn out both
his eyes, and was slain with all the Christians who had taken refuge in the
church. Rheims was demolished, but Attila was not present. Diogenes, bishop of
Arras, was also killed by the Huns and the town destroyed. Tongres underwent
the same fate, notwithstanding the sanctity and prayers of St. Servatius.
Maastricht suffered either before or after the battle of Châlons.
After the
destruction of Tongres, the Huns are said to have undertaken the siege of
Cologne, which has been rendered famous by the alleged martyrdom of St. Ursula
and 11,010 virgins, an absurd fable, which it will be however proper to notice,
as the lady has obtained a place in the calendar. If the eyes of the Hunnish general
had been extinguished, he could scarcely have commanded in the subsequent
operations; supposing them to have been lacerated by Eutropia, it is not
improbable that he may have acted very ferociously and butchered many young
women at Cologne, but the story of Ursula is utterly absurd, and the name Giulas seems
like a corruption of Julius borrowed from an older tale, and was probably not
the real name of a Hunnish commander.
Sigebertus, who
flourished at the end of the eleventh century, is probably the first writer
extant who detailed the story as relating to Ursula. The tale is given with
some variation by different authors.
The account of
Nicolas Olaus is as follows: Ursula was the only daughter of the king
of Britannia; she was courted by Ethereus son of the king of
the Angli, who requested her father to betroth her to him, on condition
that she should be permitted to travel for three years according to her vow,
requiring from Ethereus ten virgins of undoubted chastity for her
companions, to each of whom as well as to herself a thousand maidens should be
attached. The 11,011 virgins entered the mouth of the Rhine on board eleven
large ships, and proceeded to Cologne and Basle, whence they journeyed on foot
to Rome, and, having visited all the shrines in that quarter, according to her
vow, they returned with Cyriac pope of Rome to Basle and Cologne,
where the whole party were intercepted and massacred by the Huns under Giulas.
Gobelin Persona
(born AD 1358), in Cosmodrom, fully exposes the absurdity
of the story, and shows that there never was such a pope or bishop of Rome, and
that such visitations to Rome were unknown at that period. He says the tale was
derived from a recluse of Shonaugia about the year 1156; and Pray,
trusting to G. Persona, says that Elizabetha Shonaugiensis, in her
revelations in the 12th century, first added its present form to the story of
the virgins, which is untrue, for she did not even place the event in the age
of Attila. It is certain that Ursula’s name was in the calendar of saints
before the time of Elizabeth, and that she did not invent the tale, because she
mentions having seen what she relates in a vision on the day of the feast of
the 11,000 holy virgins.
Cardinal Desericius found
at Rome an old and imperfect MS. which refers the event to the year 237, saying
that Alexander Severus sent Maximin the Thracian from Illyria to repress the
Germans near the Rhine. The former being killed, Maximin proclaimed himself
emperor. He employed Julius prefect of the Rhine to besiege Cologne, and,
through hatred to the Romans, caused the virgins returning from Rome to be
massacred by Julius. It states another account to be that when Maximin moved to
the siege of Aquileia, where he perished, Julius collected a band of Suni (a
people of Germany mentioned by Pliny, Tacitus, and Cluverius), and slew
the virgins, and that Suni was afterwards confounded with Hunni, who were
called according to the Latin orthography Chuni. The MS. quotes Lampridius and
Julius Capitolinus falsely. Another account in Baronius (Ann. eccles.)
refers the tale to the year 381. He says that Gratian having conciliated the
Huns, wished that part of them should attack Great Britain with a fleet, and
part enter Gaul in concert with the Alans; that Conan, a petty king in Great
Britain, accompanied Maximus from thence to Gaul, and persuaded him to locate
the British troops in the territory evacuated by the Armoricans, and to send
over to Dinoc king of Cornwall for Ursula who was betrothed to Conan,
and 11,000 virgins for wives to the soldiers who were to form the new colony;
that Gaunus a Hunnish, and Melga a Pictish,
pirate intercepted them, and, as they preferred death to the loss of virginity,
slew them all. Baronius probably derived the account from Geoffrey of
Monmouth, and it originated in the Brut or Chronicle of the kings of Britain,
which says that Maximus and Cynan having killed Hymblat king
of the Gauls, Maximus gave Armorica to Cynan, who sent to the earl of
Cornwall for 11,000 daughters of noble Britons, 60 daughters of foreigners, and
servant maids. Their ships were dispersed and some sank. Two were seized
by Gwnass and Melwas, the former commander of the Huns, the
latter of the Picts, who were at sea with crews in support of Gratian. Another
manuscript of the Brut says that Cynan was enamoured of the daughter
of Dunawd king of Cornwall, and sent for her with a large number of
British women.
There appears no
reason to doubt the veracity of this narrative, which accounts for the subsequent
connection between Britany and Cornwall; and it appears by a letter of St
Ambrose to Maximus that the Huns were employed at that time by the Roman
emperor; and from another it is evident that the Huns had been desired to enter
Gaul, but were diverted by Valentinian. Sigebertus in his chronicle
says that in 389 Gnamus and Melga were leaders of the Huns
and Britons employed by Gratian against Maximus, and laid waste Great Britain,
but were driven into Ireland by a detachment sent by Maximus.
The Huns as a
nation had certainly no navy or maritime habits, but it is not improbable that,
when they overran the North, some of them may have adventured as sea-rovers
after the example of the Northmen. Vegnier, Vertot, Dubos, Turner,
&c deny the migration of Britons into Armorica in the time of Maximin, and
maintain that the first Briton who settled there was one Rhivallon who
fled from the encroachments of the Saxons in 513. The Loire is the southern
boundary of Britany, and the words of Sidonius Apollinaris who wrote
in the 5th century, and says that Euric king of Thoulouse was
advised to invade and conquer the Britons situated above the Loire, is decisive
as to the error of their assertion. Their king appears to have been Riothamus,
to whom a letter addressed by Sidonius is extant, and he is mentioned
by Jordanes as Riothimus king of the Britons amongst the Bituriges in
France. The upshot of the whole appears to be that when Maximus founded a
British colony in Britany in the 4th century, some of the wives or intended
brides of the colonists were intercepted by a Hunnish and Pictish pirate
in the service of Gratian; that in the following century the general of Attila,
having had his eyes lacerated by Eutropia, perhaps butchered some women at
Cologne, called Colonia Ubiorum; that Ursula the bride of the prince of
the British colony, having been killed by the pirates, had been sanctified as a
martyr; and that in the 11th or 12th centuries the stories were confounded, the
women who were slain having in both instances belonged to a colony,
(Colon ia) and suffered for resisting the incontinency of the Huns.
That such is the
real history of this fable appears further from this, that Floras, Ado,
and Wandelbert, writers of the 8th and 9th centuries on martyrology, state
the murder of the virgins at Cologne, but nothing about Great Britain,
Ursula, Ethereus, or any names of virgins or anything concerning a
pilgrimage to Rome. That Cologne (Agrippina Colonia Ubiorum) was destroyed
by the Huns is affirmed by Sigonius, Herm. Fleinius in vit. SS.
ad 21 Oct and Harseus ap. Vales. and others besides the Hungarian
writers.
From Troyes Attila
probably returned directly to Pannonia, through either Strasbourg or Basle,
continuing his course along the Danube. He passed the ensuing winter at his
capital Sicambria, which was perhaps the ancient Buda. It is fabulously
stated to have been founded by Antenor the Trojan.
When Attila either
built or enlarged Sicambria, he is said to have wished to bestow his own
name upon it, and the fatal quarrel between him and his brother is stated to
have arisen from a dispute whether it should be called Attila or Budawar.
Bleda is by some writers named Buda, and in Scandinavian sagas Buddla is
given as the name of the father of Attila, and perhaps it may be considered as
having some reference to the name Buddha, the oriental title of Woden or
Odin, who seems to have been on some occasions identified with Attila himself
in ancient Scandinavian legends. The winter was employed in recruiting his
forces, and at the opening of the spring of 453, Attila had under his command a
more powerful army, than that with which he had entered Gaul. Early in the
season he set this mighty host in motion for the overthrow of Rome. As he
mounted on his horse to take the command of this momentous expedition, a crow
is said to have perched on his right shoulder, and immediately afterwards to
have risen so high into the air, that it could no longer be discerned.
The augury was
accepted with joy, and the soldiers anticipated nothing less than the
subjugation and plunder of Italy. It will be remembered that the God Odin is
fabled to have had two crows or ravens which flew every day round the world to
do his missions, and returned at evening to his heavenly mansion; nor were
these messengers unknown to the Greek and Roman mythology. Plutarch relates
that two crows were sent out by Jupiter, one to the east, the other to the
west, and, having flown round the world, met at Delphi. Livy writes that
when Valerius, hence called Corvinus, was engaged in contest with a
powerful Gaul, a crow lighted on his helmet, and gave him the victory by
assailing the eyes of his antagonist; and we know from Prudentius that
this was one of the Delphic crows, sacred to Apollo.
It is stated by
Strabo that when Alexander the Great was in danger of perishing amidst the
sands of the desert, on his way from Parsetonium to the temple of
Jupiter Ammon, he was delivered by the guidance of two crows; nor will it be
forgotten that ravens brought food to Elijah. With these recollections it seems
not improbable that Attila may have practised some imposture in the sight of
his army, or at least that such a tale was purposely circulated amongst his
followers, to promote the superstitious belief of a communication having been
made to him by the Deity. There is much discrepancy in the various accounts of
the route by which he entered Italy, but from the enormous bulk of his army it
is probable that they may all be founded in truth, and that his army advanced
in several columns which were to reunite after having passed the Alps.
The Byzantine
emperor Marcian, who had the administration of the provinces on the
north-west of the Adriatic, had left their numerous towns ungarrisoned. Attila
crossed the Drave and the Save, and the whole of Styria, Carinthia, Illyria,
and Dalmatia, was overrun by his forces without any serious
opposition. Aetius, who commanded the armies of Rome, whether from
treasonable views, or because Valentinian kept the main forces of the empire
for the immediate defence of Rome, whither he had withdrawn from Ravenna upon
the alarm of an approaching invasion, certainly made no attempt to oppose the
progress of the great antagonist whom he had so lately discomfited on the plain
of Châlons; but the whole tenor of his life seems to mark that he must have
been consulting his own personal aggrandizement, and utterly disregarding the
interests of his country.
We may figure to
ourselves the reminiscences of that great and dissembling commander, while,
stretching his hopes to the acquisition of power exceeding that of the
mightiest emperors, he lay in purposed inactivity before Rome, awaiting the
effects of intemperance and disorganization on the force of Attila, and
distraction and imbecility on the imperial counsels. We may fancy him bringing
to mind the early instructions of his Scythian father, and of his mother who
was descended from one of the most illustrious families of Latium; the youthful
energy which had led him to excel in every exercise of the field or forest; his
first and early military achievements; his sojourn as a hostage in the court of
Alaric, and afterwards of Rhuas the Hunnish monarch; the hypocrisy
with which he had pretended to embrace Christianity, while his heart was imbued
with the leaven of paganism; his initiation of his son Carpileo into
all the orgies of idolatry in the capital of Attila; his abode in the palace of
John the usurper; his advance at the head of a Hunnish army towards
Ravenna, the consternation with which he heard of the sudden destruction of
John, and the art with which he made his peace with Valentinian; the military
titles which were the reward of his treason, extorted from his imbecile rulers;
his command in Gaul, where in three campaigns he rescued Aries from the
Visigoths, the Rhine from Clodion, and overwhelmed the Juthungians of
Bavaria; the treachery by which he had compromised Boniface, and the ruin he
brought thereby on the Roman authority in Africa; his personal conflict with
Boniface, and mortification at the only defeat he suffered in his life, and the
malignant joy with which he heard of the subsequent death of his rival; his
flight from the arm of justice to Ms pagan ally, and the authority which he
again obtained through the influence of the enemies of his country; his further
successes in Gaul and Burgundy; the art with which he reconciled Theodoric to
the Roman arms; the energy with which he inspired his allies; the mighty
conflict of Châlons; the skill with which he diverted Torismond from
avenging his father, and persuaded Meroveus to remain content with the Parisian
kingdom; his secret negotiations with Attila, and all the vast and daring
projects which had been since fermenting in his mind. If we place this picture
before us, we shall probably have filled up the outline of historical truth
with no unreal imaginations.
The heart sickens,
when we bring to mind the praises lavished by Gibbon upon this evil man, the
outbreaking of whose treachery was probably anticipated by the jealousy of his
roaster, and his sudden destruction. The existence of a coin bearing the
superscription Flavius Aetius imperator, gives reason to suspect that he had
even committed an overt act of treason before he was cut short by
Valentinian.
The defence of the
Julian Alps, through which the Huns were preparing to enter Italy, was
entrusted to a small number of Visigothic auxiliaries under Alaric and Antal or Athal.
Emona a flourishing town at the foot of the Alps was evacuated by its
inhabitants on the approach of the invaders, by whom it was so completely
destroyed, that no author recognizes its existence after that period. The Roman
auxiliaries delayed the advance of Attila a little through the Goritian forest;
but, after many conflicts, they were forced to abandon the mountain passes, and
multitudes of barbarians poured through them with overwhelming impetuosity on
the delightful district of Forum Julii. On the first alarm of an intended
invasion, Valentinian had taken measures to put the important city of Aquileia
in a state to resist the advance of the enemy. About the year 190 before the
birth of Christ, the Gauls, having entered Carnia from Germany,
had founded a city near the site of Aquileia, which was soon destroyed by the
Romans. The Istri invaded the province four years after, whereupon
the senate determined to build a town for the defence of the neighbouring
territory, and in the year 181 before Christ Aquileia was founded by a colony
from Rome. Augustus Caesar adorned Aquileia with temples and theatres,
fortified the harbour, and paved the roads. He increased its circuit to twelve
miles, or, as some say, to fifteen.
The remains of a
double wall were to be seen in tolerable preservation in the 17th century,
running directly east, eleven miles in length, like two parallel lines,
composed of stones piled up, but not cemented by any kind of mortar. Aquileia
stood on the banks and at the mouth of the river Natissa, which washed a
large part of its wall. Sabellicus supposes that the name of
the Sontius was lost after its junction with the Natissa,
(whereas on the contrary the modern name of the Natisone is lost in
the Isonzo) or else that the Natissa did not in ancient times fall
into the Sontius, or that a stream flowed by a subterraneous channel out
of the Natissa into the sea, because both Pliny and Strabo mention
the mouth of the Natissa.
He adds that in
his time only a church of the Virgin Mary, and the huts of a few peasants and
fishermen remained on the site of Aquileia; but that
many monuments, public ways, magnificent and sumptuous paved roads,
aqueducts, sepulchres, and pavements, were still extant, by which the great
size and distinguished appearance of the ancient town might be easily
ascertained. The territory of Aquileia was called Forum Julii and also Carnia.
The Carnians were a people inhabiting the mountains, where they led a
pastoral life, their country being too rugged for tillage. In the year of our
Lord 167 the physician Galen followed M. Aurelius and L. Commodus to Aquileia,
and wrote his commentaries there.
In 361 in the
reign of Julian his general Immon besieged Aquileia, and finding that
the citizens derived great advantage from the river as a defence and means of
obtaining provisions, he discontinued the siege, and employed his army by an immense
exertion to excavate a new bed for the river, and conduct it to the sea at a
considerable distance from the town. The inhabitants were however supplied by
plenty of cisterns and wells, and did not suffer from the loss of water.
Aquileia underwent another siege subsequently, when Maximin was discomfited
before its walls and put to death by his own troops.
Herodian, who
gives an account of this siege, states that Aquileia was a city of the first
magnitude, with an abundant population, being situated on the seashore in front
of all the Illyrian nations, as the emporium of Italy, delivering to navigators
the produce of the continent brought down by land or by the rivers, and
furnishing seaborne necessaries, especially wine, to the upper countries, which
were less fertile than the southern provinces from severity of climate.
Immediately after
crossing the Alps, Attila routed and utterly annihilated the Roman force which
was opposed to him in the neighbourhood of Tergeste, the modern Trieste,
especially the cavalry under Forestus the distinguished ruler
of Atestia, the modern Este, and other Italian troops which had been
placed there by Menapus the governor of Aquileia to oppose his
progress. The Huns then crossed the Sontius, and directed their whole
might against Aquileia, which was at that time one of the fairest and most
flourishing cities in the world, but was destined to be trampled under the
relentless foot of Attila, and to become a desolation and a thing obliterated
from the earth. Belenus, Felenus, or Belis had been the
tutelary God of Aquileia, and, although the population was now at least
nominally Christian, he was still held in great veneration as a guardian saint,
if not an actual Deity. Herodian states that, when Maximin was engaged in the
fruitless siege of Aquileia, before which he lost his life by the hands of his
own soldiers, the besieged were encouraged by the oracles of their peculiar or
provincial God Belin, or, if the word be inflected, Belis, whom they
worshipped most religiously, and considered to be Apollo. The soldiers of
Maximin affirmed that they beheld the likeness of the God in the air, fighting
for the town, either superstitiously fancying that they saw something unusual,
or making use of the fable to cover their own unwillingness.
Julius Capitolinus says
that the discomfiture of Maximin was fortold by the augurs of the
God Belenus, who is mentioned also by Ausonius. G. F. Palladio says that,
when Maxentius was patriarch, about the year 841, a church and monastery of
Benedictine monks was built out of the ruins of the temple of the false God of
the province named Bellenus, not far from Aquileia, and was named L'Abbatia della Belligna,
but was afterwards abandoned on account of malaria. The name given to the
monastery and derived from that of the pagan God, out of the ruins of whose
temple it was constructed, is very deserving of notice.
In the same manner
the temple of Flora at Brescia became the chapel of St Floranus. These are
amongst the numerous instances of the manner in which the Christians compounded
with the pagans, not really converting them, but permitting the worship of their
favourite idol under the licensed character of a saint. This baneful practice
became a main source of the corruption of the church of Rome.
The Christianity
of the Aquileians must have continued in a very unsettled state, for
Stephen the patriarch in 517 was an Arian, and the epitaph of Elias the
patriarch, who removed the see of Aquileia to Grado, states him to have been a
Manichaean. Palladius gives eight inscriptions in which Belenus is
named. The last is Apollini Beleno C. Aquileien. felix ....
He adds that the church of St Felix the martyr stands where the temple of Belenus was;
that the natives do not call it Felix, but Felus (non Felicem sed Felum)
with an evident allusion, as he observes, to the ancient name of the God. He
adds that there is another more certain reminiscence of Belenus, because
there still exists a noble abbey of which the tutelary saint is called St.
Martin, (and be it recollected that in Latin these saints were actually called
Divi) but is universally called Belenus for no other reason than the
recollection of the idol, which after so many centuries could not be
extinguished by any rites of true religion. In fact it was the corrupt
impropriety of those rites, which, by attributing divinity to the saint,
nourished and appeared to justify the reminiscence of the idol. Palladius adds
that in the first age of Christianity the Aquileians did not desist
from worshipping Belenus with magnificent sacrifices, and were so
prone to that superstition, that those who were initiated in it were a great
obstacle to the spread of Christianity.
Sir John Reresby,
who travelled in the time of Cromwell, speaking of Venice says: “The palace of
the patriarchs is one of the first, where we saw some ancient statues of the
Roman Gods, as of Bacchus, Mercury, Pallas, Venus, and others; as also some
little couches or beds on which the Romans used to lie when they made feasts in
honour of their Gods. Upon these are engraved certain characters, signifying
vows made to the God Bellinus, formerly in great repute amongst the Aquileians,
from whom these were taken with many other antiquities, at the razing of one of
their chief cities and a Roman colony by Attila king of the Huns”.
This is a curious
confirmation of the account given by Sabellicus and H. Palladium that Menapus governor
of Aquileia removed the valuables and furniture of the town to the Venetian
isle of Gradus before he evacuated it, written by a person who does not appear
to have known that Aquileia itself had been sacked by Attila. Joannes Candidas,
a lawyer of Venice, whose work was published in 1521, seven years after that
of Sabellicus, discredits the accounts of Menapus and Oricus,
but without any reason assigned, probably from indiscriminate disgust at
the Atestine forgeries. H. Palladius gives a remarkable
inscription found at Aquileia, and dated a few years before its destruction.
Januarius who thus forewarned the inhabitants of the city of its approaching
destruction by the scourge of God was patriarch before Nicetas, and died
in 452 before the accomplishment of the visitation he foresaw.
On the approach of
the enemy Menapus ordered a simultaneous sally from two gates of the
town, and slew many of the Huns who had advanced incautiously, and put their
van to flight. The conflict was continued for many hours, when he was at last
forced to give way before the increasing numbers of the enemy, and retreated
safely into the town.
Attila fortified
his encampment, and on the following day accompanied by a few followers is said
to have reconnoitred the town. He had almost reached the river, when Menapus suddenly
attacked him from the rear. Attila with difficulty escaped, wounded, and
baring lost the ornament of his helmet, and the greater part, if not the whole,
of his attendants. After this hazardous encounter he became more cautious,
acted more through the agency of his generals, and exposed himself less to
personal danger.
According to
another account, he had been in the habit of going his rounds alone and
disguised, to observe the most assailable points of the city, and having been
induced by the apparent silence and loneliness of the wall to approach nearer
than usual, he was surprised by a body of armed men, who, having observed him,
had sallied through a sewer under the walls, not knowing him to be the great
king, but desirous of extorting from a hostile spy the plans of the enemy, and
learning what hopes they entertained of capturing the town.
They surrounded
him, therefore, wishing to take him alive. He placed his back against a steep
bank, so that he could only be assailed in front, and defended himself; but
finding the Aquileians, who were not desirous of killing him, remiss in
the attack, he suddenly sprang forward with a loud shout and slew two of them,
and immediately vaulting over the wall of some buildings near the town, he
escaped to his own troops. Those, who bad surrounded him, reported that, while
he was looking round and collecting his strength for the assault, the
appearance of his eyes was in a manner celestial, and sparks of fire glanced
from them, like the energy attributed by heathen writers to the eyes of their
Gods. The same anecdote is related by another historian, who states that he was
on horseback, and that the circumstance took place near the end of the siege,
the day before he observed the departure of the stork. He also speaks of the
sparks emitted from his eyes, and says that when two of the assailants had been
slain by him, the rest were daunted and suffered him to depart.
Menapus was a
man of great activity and valour; he did not permit the Huns to enjoy a moment
of rest by day or night, sometimes attacking them by surprise, sometimes
openly, intercepting their foragers, capturing their stragglers, and carrying
slaughter and tumult into their quarters by night Attila at the commencement of
the siege had no instruments for taking towns with him except ladders, either
because his people were not skilful in the construction of engines, or because
he preferred, through excess of pride, to rely on their personal exertions. A
desperate attack was however made by the Huns with ladders, which was repelled
by the garrison, who threw stones, fire, and boiling water, on the
assailants; Menapus everywhere exerting himself, exhorting and
exciting his troops, rewarding valour and punishing remissness. After a great
loss of men, Attila was forced to discontinue the assault, but it was renewed
day after day with no better success, till at last the Huns found it necessary
to make regular and scientific approaches, throwing up a bank and
constructing vineo, which at that time were the usual protection of
besiegers. At this period of the siege it is probable that Attila undertook the
great work at Udine, which was at first called Hunnium, and
afterwards Utinum, as a place of safety for his sick and wounded, and a
strong depot, whenever he might advance into Italy. The conical hill which he
raised and fortified, remains to this day an imperishable monument of the
immensity of his resources.
All writers
concerning it agree that it was fortified by Attila during the siege, having
been perhaps originally strengthened by Julius Caesar. H. Palladium gives an
ample account of it to the following effect Attila raised it up and fortified
it as a safe post during the siege, and a point of support for his future
operations. During the beleaguerment of Aquileia, the concourse to Hunnium had
been so great, that many had built themselves houses of wood and stone along
the way to Aquileia. Attila feared that a sally from thence might overpower
these defenceless houses, and he abstained from pressing the siege for a few
days, while he marked out the site of a town, and surrounded it with a strong
rampart and gates protected by towers. After the capture of Aquileia he built a
wall on the new rampart, and raised the mound of the Julian fortress, not only
the slaves and captives, but all the soldiers, bringing earth in the cavity of
their shields, till it was sufficiently increased. H. Palladius had
an opportunity of verifying this account, the earth having been excavated to
make a tank, when the artificial nature of one side of the mound was evident,
from the admixture of worked stones and fragments of tiles with the earth, and
also by the discovery of an old helmet; whereas the other side of the mound
consisted of dry rock.
Having thus raised
a secure defence for his own troops against the destructive sallies of the
garrison, Attila pressed the siege with vigour. At the northern angle of the
tower stood a tower of great antiquity, which, being occupied by a strong
force, very much molested Attila. Menapus had strengthened its
fortifications, and made a wall and ditch in front of it. It was a great object
to Attila to gain possession of this outwork, because it commanded the whole
town He therefore approached his works to it, and filled the ditch with earth
and stones, and tried by his archery to drive the Aquileians from the
walls, while he sent light troops across the ditch to break down the wall with
hatchets. Having succeeded in clearing the walls by incessant vollies of
arrows, they overleaped the fosse, singing barbarian omens of victory. Menapus came
immediately to the relief of the tower, and hot iron, molten lead, and blazing
pitch, were thrown upon the Huns. Attila goaded on fresh troops to the attack,
compelling them not only by words of command, but by the sword, to advance to
certain death. But at length they gained a footing on the inner side of the
fosse, and began to destroy the wall, where the mortar of the new works was not
perfectly hardened, and a narrow breach was made.
Menapus singly
resisted in the breach, and sallied through it, followed by a great power
of Aquileians, and they forced their way even to
Attila himself through the flying enemy, throwing
torches and firebrands amongst them. Oricus brother of the governor
sallied at the same time through the nearest gate with the Roman cavalry, and
made great havoc amongst the enemy, killing all stragglers, and increasing the
disorder of the discomfited Huns. Attila immediately ordered his own cavalry to
advance, and charged at their head. After a severe conflict near the villa
of Mencetius, Oricus was either killed or mortally wounded, and
his followers nearly all cut off.
Menapus, wounded,
returned through the breach in the outer wall, and some of the Huns forced
their way in, but their comrades were beat off by the engines of the garrison,
and he got safe into the town. Night succeeded, and the Huns continued to sap
the foundations of the tower, but, being only protected by their shields, they
were at last forced to fall back with great loss of men. The Aquileians however
had sacrificed their whole cavalry and its leader, a loss which outweighed all
the previous slaughter of the enemy, and the town was become ruinous and almost
untenable. Forestus and many other valiant men had fallen in its
defence.
Menapus,
therefore, despairing of successful resistance, as the army of Aetius remained
inactive behind the Po, and no hopes of relief were held out to him, sent by
night the children and women, and the wounded men to the nearest island,
Gradus, with the patriarch Nicetas and the church utensils,
being confident that the barbarians, who were unskilled in navigation, would
not pursue their enemies by sea. He then attempted to repair the fortifications
of the town and the wall in front of it.
The third month
was now far spent, since Attila had commenced operations against Aquileia, and
yet there was no certain prospect of taking the town. His troops murmured, and
began to talk of raising the siege, when he observed a stork remove its young
from the long contested tower. Thereupon he turned to his soldiers, and,
auguring its speedy fell from that circumstance, he exhorted them to make a
most vigorous attack upon it. Having been undermined and shaken before, it was
at last beat out of the perpendicular by the immense stones thrown by the
engines which he had caused to be constructed. It fell in the night time with a
tremendous crash, which made the whole population start out of their beds; and,
if Attila had immediately attacked the city, he might have taken it in the first
moment of confusion.
The obscurity of
the night and the ignorance of the Huns as to the actual state of the defences
gave the besieged a short respite, and Menapus quickly constructed an
inner fortification with mud and stones, but he was aware that such a defence
could not hold out long. At day break, Attila, having seen the state of
things, made a bloody attack, and gained possession of the ruins of the tower;
and, having driven the Aquileians behind the old wall, he began to
strengthen the post, intending to use it for offensive operations against the
town. Menapus now despaired of making good the defence of Aquileia;
provisions were beginning to fail, and Valentinian had abandoned the outfit of
a fleet which he had ordered to be equipped at Ravenna at the commencement of
the siege. The governor therefore removed the greater part of his people to
Gradus during the night, and placed statues or figures on the walls to look
like sentinels, and prevent the enemy from noticing the evacuation of the city
by the garrison.
When the day
broke, the Huns at first wondered at the unusual silence, but at length
observing birds alight on some of the figures, they perceived that the
fortifications were abandoned. They immediately forced their way through the
new wall, and killed all the men, children, and aged women, who were still
remaining in the town; the younger women found in it were reserved for the
embraces of the conquerors. Two matrons of high rank, and distinguished for
beauty and chastity, having lost their husbands during the siege, had continued
day and night mourning over their tombs, and refused to leave them, when the
town was evacuated. Their names were Digna and Honoria. When the defences were
stormed, to escape the incontinency of the Huns, Digna ascended an adjoining
tower, which stood beside the river, and, having veiled her head, she threw
herself into it and perished. Honoria, having thrown her arms round the stone
sepulchre in which the remains of her husband were interred, clung to it with
such perseverance, that she could not be dragged from it, till slain by the
swords of the enemy. Thus fell Aquileia, 633 years after its foundation,
perhaps the greatest town in the West after Rome.
Almost all the
writers, who mention its overthrow, say that it was completely burnt and
demolished, so that the barbarians seemed desirous of obliterating every
vestige of its existence, but many circumstances contradict that assertion,
which has been hastily adopted by modern historians. Aquileia is frequently
mentioned as existing after the departure of Attila, and it is certain that the
patriarchs continued to dwell there till the time of the invasion of the Lombards,
from whom the last calamity of the town proceeded. Justinian, long after the
time of Attila, calls Aquileia the greatest of all the cities of the West, as
if it were still existing. Many particulars indeed are known concerning
Aquileia, down to the period of the removal of the see. Nicetas, the
patriarch, returned from Gradus, after the retreat of Attila, and exerted
himself to restore the church and the town.
The fugitives
began to reassemble from different quarters, and many of them, having been
supposed to have died in the war, found their wives provided with other
husbands. This led to a correspondence between Nicetas and Pope Leo,
the patriarch complaining that many of the women had remarried, knowing that
their husbands were in captivity, and not expecting them to return. Leo
exculpated the women who really believed their husbands to be dead, and condemned
the others as guilty of adultery, but he ordered all to return to their first
husbands under pain of excommunication. He directed those who had been baptized
by heretics, not having been before baptized, to be confirmed by imposition of
hands as having taken the form of baptism without the sanctification, but he
forbad rebaptism. The heretics alluded to were the Sabellians and
Arians, of whom there were many in the army of Attila, and who appear to have
made common cause with the pagans. The whole letter of Leo is extant, and
proves that Nicetas did not fall, as has been asserted, in the siege.
He died about the year 463, and his statue and epitaph were placed in the
patriarchal hall at Udine.
During the siege
detachments from the army of Attila carried devastation far and wide in the
adjoining territory, and treason was at work to betray into his hands several
of the cities of Italy. Treviso, then Tarvisium, is said to have been
yielded to the Huns through the means of its bishop Helinundus, who was probably
inclined to the Arians, and of Araicus Tempestas, and Verona to have
been given up by Diatheric or Theodoric, who has been celebrated in
various Scandinavian and German romances under the name of Thidrek of
Bern, meaning Verona, and has been much confounded with Theodoric the great,
afterwards king of Italy, who was not then born. After the demolition of
Aquileia, Attila marched immediately against Concordia, a flourishing town, of
which the ruler Janus (who has become the hero of an Italian, perhaps
originally a Provencal, romance) had probably molested him during the siege.
Janus, with his wife Ariadne, fled to the nearest islands, and the conqueror
entered and annihilated the deserted city. One church, that of St Stephen, and
a few cottages were the only remains of Concordia at the end of
the 15th century.
Attila next
exterminated Altinum. Patavium (Padua), Cremona, Vincentia
(Vicenza), Mediolanum (Milan), Brixia (Brescia), and Bergomum (Bergamo),
were successively captured. The fugitives from Aquileia had established
themselves in the isle of Gradua, the Concordians fled to Crapulse,
afterwards Caorli, the Altinates to Torcellum, Maiorbium,
and Amorianum, and the Paduans to Rivus altus, which is now
nearly the centre of Venice, and is recognized in the modern name of the
Rialto.
The foundations of
the bright city of the waters was then laid, upon the sedgy islands that
fringed the Adriatic, by the refugees from the various towns of Italy that were
dismantled by the barbarian. Valentinian had fled from his palace at Ravenna to
the protection of the eternal city, and Attila, while besieging Padua, or at a
later period of his progress, is said to have received John the Arian bishop of
Ravenna, who came with his clergy in white robes to solicit his mercy for their
town and its population, and perhaps to offer him the assistance of the Arians
to subjugate all Italy without a conflict, if he would adopt their faith. He is
said to have answered that he would spare the town, but would throw down their
gates and trample them under the feet of his cavalry, that the inhabitants
might not in their vanity imagine their own strength to have been the cause of
their preservation.
On his march to
Concordia, Attila is said to have met some mountebanks, who, in the hope of
obtaining money, jumped with singular skill and agility amongst some swords
which were artfully arranged. Thinking the employment despicable for men who
had evidently sufficient bodily power and activity to use the sword efficiently
in warfare, he ordered them to be covered with armour and to imitate him in
vaulting on horseback with the weight of metal on them, which they proved
unable to perform; neither could they bend the bow properly, nor fix the arrow
in the string. He therefore ordered their well-fed bodies to be reduced by
spare diet and exercise, and enrolled them amongst his recruits.
After the capture
of Padua, a distinguished poet named Marullus the Calabrian, and who was
probably the same person whose poem detailing the latter part of the siege of
Troy which had been “left untold by the blind bard of Greece”, has descended to
us under the name of Quintus Calaber, recited a poem in his praise, which
gave him such offence, because it referred his origin to the gods of Greece and
Rome, that he ordered it to be burnt and the poet put to death, but he remitted
the latter part of the sentence. This anecdote, which was probably extracted
from the MS. of Priscus, has been misunderstood by those who imagined from it
that he repudiated divine honours, whereas the offence was the connecting him
with a worship he detested, and with Bacchus or some other deity of the Pelasgians.
Herodotus relates that Scylas, king of the Scythians, was beheaded by his
own subjects in Borysthenes, and his palace, which was adorned with marble
sphinxes and gryphons, fulminated and burnt by the god of the Scythians,
because he adopted the Bacchic rites, which were held in abhorrence amongst
them. That furnishes an explanation to the indignation of Attila.
During the attack
of Florence, a statue of the god Mars, which notwithstanding the edict of
Caesar still occupied an elevated station in the town, having been, however,
removed from the temple which was dedicated to St. John, fell into the Arno,
probably knocked down by the engines of the besiegers. At Vincentia Attila met
with a stout resistance, and, finding his men hesitate, he leaped into the fosse,
and wading through the water, which was breast-deep, led them to the assault,
and was the first who scaled the rampart. But at Brixia he met with
more dangerous opposition, and received a wound in the hand, which induced him
to consign that city to more complete destruction than the rest of the
conquered places. Yet Brixia was a town in which paganism appears to
have lingered particularly. The temple of Flora had been converted into a
church dedicated to St Floranus, to accommodate the heathens who adhered
to their tutelary divinity, furnishing, like the dedication of the temple
of Belis, or Felus, to St. Felix at Aquileia, one of the many
instances in which the Church of Rome compromised with the pagans, whom it
admitted within its pale without really converting them from idolatry, thus
laying the foundation of its own corruption; but, in the Triumpline valley
hard by, the iron statue of the god Tyllinus had escaped amidst the
general destruction of idols, and remained after the days of Attila. Milan submitted
to the conqueror, and a curious anecdote is related m a fragment of Priscus,
for the preservation of which we are indebted to his having used an uncommon
word for a bag, which caused it to be quoted by the lexicographer Suidas.
Attila having observed in Milan a picture of the Roman emperors seated upon a
throne of gold, and Scythians prostrate before them, ordered himself to be
painted on a throne, and the Roman emperors bearing sacks on their shoulders
and pouring out gold from them at his feet. After inflicting this lesson upon
the pride of the Caesars he continued his victorious career, plundering Ticinum (Pavia),
Mantua, Placentia, Parma, and Ferrara, and, as Jornandes asserts,
demolished almost all Italy, which gives some colour to the improbable
assertion of the Hungarian writers, that he despatched his general Zowar to
ravage Apulia, Calabria, and the whole coast of the Adriatic, destroying a town
named Catona, as having been founded by Cato. Geminianus, bishop
of Mutina (Modena), afterwards sanctified, is said to have played the
same game as Lupus and John of Ravenna, and by submission to have conciliated
the favour of the invader and saved the town. Attila is particularly stated to
have laid waste Emilia (which must mean the country traversed by the via
Emilia, between Aquileia and Rimini, Pisa and Tortona) and Marchia, which
has been explained to signify the territory of Bergamo, but was in truth used
to designate the March of Ancona. Ferrara is said to have been destroyed,
though, perhaps, at an earlier period of the campaign.
Thus far had
Attila proceeded without meeting any material obstacle after the reduction of
Aquileia, but Aetius had probably a considerable force under his command for
the protection of Rome, and, since the Huns had crossed the Po, he had not
ceased to hang upon their flanks, and to take every opportunity of cutting off
their stragglers. A course of desultory victories and continual plunder had
probably contributed to relax the discipline and diminish the numbers of the army
of Attila. He deliberated whether or not to proceed against Rome, and such
deliberations generally end by the adoption of the weaker counsel.
Evil forebodings
had become prevalent amongst his vassal kings, who represented to him that
Alaric had not long survived the invasion and plunder of the Romulean capital,
and the mind of Attila appears at that time to have been influenced by a vague
superstitious apprehension. He halted, as the later authorities assert near the
confluence of the Mincio and the Po, but it has been presumed from
the relation of Jordanes who names the place Acroventus Mambuleius,
where the Mincio is forded by travellers, that it must have been
where the great Roman road crossed the river at Ardelica, the modern Peschiera,
near the point where it issues from the Benacus or Lago di Garda,
close to the farm of Virgil, and the Sirmian peninsula of Catullus.
It is however by no means improbable that the river might have been forded at
some place to the south of Mantua, though the opinion of Maffei has led to the
supposition that the place designated was close to Peschiera. Governolo,
near the confluence of the Mincio and the Po, is a much more probable
situation for the halt of Attila, after having ravaged the southern banks of
the Po; for if he had actually fallen back as far as the Benacus before
he received the embassy, he must have previously abandoned the prosecution of
his enterprise, which is not even surmised by any writer on the subject.
While he was
hesitating, whether to advance and attempt the complete subjugation of Rome, or
to give way to the forebodings of his advisers, Zowar is said to have
returned with great plunder from the coast of the Adriatic, and at the same
moment an embassy from Valentinian, who had despatched Leo the pope or bishop
of Rome, Avienus a man of consular dignity, and the praetorian
prefect Trigetius, arrived at the camp of Attila. Leo is stated by
his biographer and some other writers to have thrown himself at the feet of
Attila, and to have delivered a speech of the most abject and unconditional
submission. He is made to say, after the manner of Lupus, that evil men had
felt his scourge, and to pray that the suppliants who addressed him might feel
his clemency.
That the senate
and Roman people, once conquerors of the world, but now defeated, humbly asked
pardon and safety from Attila the king of kings; that nothing amid the
exuberant glory of his great actions, could have befallen him more conducive to
the present lustre of his name or to its future celebrity, than that the
people, before whose feet all nations and kings had lain prostrate, should now
be suppliant before his. That he had subdued the whole world, since it had been
granted to him to overthrow the Romans, who had conquered all other nations. That
they prayed him who had subdued all things to subdue himself; that, as he had
surpassed the summit of human glory, nothing could render him more like to
Almighty God, than to will that security should be extended through his
protection to the many whom he had subdued.
The letters
however of Leo, which are extant, upon various subjects chiefly connected with
church discipline, seem to testify a right-judging and upright mind, and render
it very improbable that he should have debased himself and the government which
he then represented by such mean and contemptible adulation. Whether he
addressed the mighty Hun in the language of abject submission, or strove to
conciliate him by a more rational and dignified appeal, he was completely
successful in obtaining the object of his mission.
The king is said
to have stood silent and astonished, moved by veneration at the appearance, and
affected by the tears, of the pontiff; and, when he was afterwards questioned
by his vassals, why he had conceded so much to the entreaties of Leo, to have answered
that he did not reverence him, but had seen another man in sacerdotal raiment,
more august in form and venerable from his grey hairs, who held a drawn sword,
and threatened him with instant death, unless he granted everything that Leo
demanded. The vision was reputed to be that of St Peter, and according to
Nicolas Olaus he saw two figures, who were reported to have been St.
Paul and St Peter.
This celebrated
anecdote, the memory of which is said to have been made illustrious by the
works of Raphael and Algarve, is to be looked upon as an ecclesiastical
fiction, but Attila seems to have been alarmed by a superstitious dread of the
fate which overtook Alaric speedily after the subjugation of Rome. A joke is
related as having been prevalent against Attila amongst his followers, founded
on the names of the two bishops Lupus and Leo, that as in Gaul he had yielded
to the wolf, he now gave way before the lion. He had probably more weighty
reasons for his retreat, than the venerable aspect of the lion, the visions of
the apostles, or the fate of the Gothic conqueror. His army was enervated by
the sack of the Italian towns, and a grievous pestilence had thinned its ranks;
the devastation of the country had rendered it difficult to obtain subsistence,
and his troops were suffering from famine, as well as disease; the recollection
of Radagais, who had not long before in the plenitude of his power been
starved into unconditional surrender on the heights of Faesulae, may have
furnished him with rational grounds of apprehension, while the army of Aetius,
fresh and unbroken, was hanging upon his skirts, intercepting his foragers,
cutting off his stragglers, and watching opportunity to inflict some more
important injury.
An ample donation
of gold, according to the base practice of that period, was probably added to
the causes which induced Attila to forego for that season at least the attack
of Rome; and he consented to withdraw his forces, threatening however that he
would return in the ensuing spring to inflict the most determined vengeance on
the Romans, unless Honoria and her portion of the imperial inheritance were
conceded to him. Cassiodorus and Carpileo probably transacted the
details of the treaty after the first audience of the ambassadors.
Theodoric king of
Italy, in a rescript to the Roman senate, announcing the elevation of M. A.
Cassiodorus to the patriciate, asserts that the conclusion of the peace was
mainly attributable to the skill and intrepidity of the elder Cassiodorius his
father. He speaks in high praise of him, saying that his mental qualities were
equal to those of Aetius, and that on account of his wisdom and glorious
exertions on behalf of the state he was associated with that distinguished
commander, and was therefore deputed with Carpileo son of Aetius to
“Attila the armipotent”. “Fearless (continues Theodoric) he beheld the man who
was dreaded by the empire; confiding in the truth he disregarded his terrible
and threatening countenance. He found the king haughty, but left him appeased;
and so completely overthrew his calumnious allegations by the force of truth,
that he disposed him to seek conciliation, whose interest was not to be at
peace with a state so wealthy. By his firmness he raised up the timid party,
nor could those be looked upon as faint-hearted, who were defended by such
fearless negotiators. He returned with a treaty, which the nation had despaired
of obtaining”. Theodoric bears no mean testimony to the magnanimity of Attila,
when he asserts, that the truth spoken by a foe could disarm him in the full
career of his hostility. Cassiodorus, to whom we are indebted for the
preservation of Theodoric’s account of his father’s distinguished ability in
conducting the negotiation, says in his chronicle that pope Leo made the peace
under the direction of Valentinian.
Whether or not
Honoria was afterwards delivered up to Attila is a point that admits of doubt,
though no mention of her having been given to him is made by the Roman writers;
but the Hungarians speak of a son Chaba borne to him by Honoria after
his death. Nothing is recorded concerning her after this period, and she most
probably died in prison, unless, having been sent to him, she finished her life
amongst the heathens.
She was not amongst
the ladies of the imperial family whom Genseric afterwards carried off from the
sack of Rome to Africa. The steps which had been taken on the discovery of
the correspondence of Honoria with Attila are buried in oblivion with the
lost work of Priscus, but the expression of Jordanes that Attila
asserted that Honoria had done (or, strictly, admitted) nothing which should
disqualify her from marrying him, induces me to believe that she was
immediately compelled to undergo a mock ceremony of marriage, probably never
consummated, for the purpose of preventing her union with him.
A medal has been
preserved, and engraved by Angeloni, in which she bears the title of
Augusta, which was perhaps struck at this time to appease and gratify Attila,
for at no other time was Valentinian likely to have permitted it. After
the pacification had been concluded between Attila and the Roman legates, he
fell back with his whole force towards Pannonia. At the passage of the
Lycus or Lech, a fanatical woman, perhaps one of the prophetesses who are
described as always accompanying the Hunnish armies, is said to have
suddenly crossed his path, and, seizing hold of the bridle of his horse, to
have three times cried out, “Back, Attila!”, but notwithstanding that warning
he continued his course to his Hungarian capital, from whence he was never
again to take the field against the Romans.
Having returned
home, Attila sent an embassy to Marcian to demand tribute, whereupon
Apollonius was dispatched across the Danube from Constantinople to appease his
anger. It does not appear whether he pacified him by gifts at that time, but
money was probably paid.
Jordanes states
that Attila proceeded afterwards by a different route from that which he had
before followed to re-enter Gaul, and again attempt the reduction of the Alans
on the Loire; but that Torismond king of the Visigoths was prepared
to assist them, and defeated him once more on the same Catalaunian plain,
forcing him to return home ingloriously. Notwithstanding the assertion of that
writer, who lived in the century next after the events he related, the
concurrent testimony of the Roman Chronicles, and the date of Attila’s death
make it certain that the story was as false, as it is improbable. It must have
originated in the circumstance of king Torismond having succeeded to
the throne during the victory of Châlons, which might therefore have been truly
said to have been gained first by Theodoric, and after his fall by Torismond;
and an interval of time being erroneously placed between the exploits of the
father and the son, the same events were supposed to have occurred again at a
later period. Gregory of Tours however relates that the Alans themselves were
defeated by Torismond not long before his death, which took place in
this same year, but he makes no mention of any Huns in Gaul at that period.
If the life of
the Hunnish conqueror had been prolonged many years beyond this time,
it appears as certain, as any event that human foresight can anticipate by the
consideration of existing things and past experience, that the Roman empires of
the West and East must erelong have been reduced to unconditional surrender of
their authority, and that, without the intervention of some great and
unexpected deliverance, Christianity, which had so lately become the law of the
empire, must have been nearly stifled in Europe; but it pleased the Divine
wisdom to cut short the life of Attila at the very moment, when the predictions
concerning the termination of the Roman power, at the expiration of its 1200th
year, seemed about to be accomplished by his elevation to the thrones of both
Caesars, and the revelation of Antichrist was expected in his person; and with
his life the mighty fabric which he had consolidated was immediately dissolved.
The innumerable offspring
of his multifarious concubinage claimed participation in the inheritance of his
power. They did not however succeed in wresting it from the children of Creca,
who were his lawful successors, but the great warriors amongst his vassal kings
were too valiant and preponderant to be long constrained by influence less
authoritative, than that of Attila. The Gothic kings threw off the yoke;
and Gepidian Arderic, who had been the faithful counsellor and
companion of Attila, and the bulwark of his authority, struck the fatal blow to
that of the young princes, whom he defeated in a great battle near the
river Netad, which is not identified, and took possession of all Dacia.
From that moment
the ascendancy of the Huns was utterly extinguished. Ellac, the eldest of
the princes fell in the battle, and Dengisich and Irnach fled
to the shores of the Euxine. In the following year (455) Dengisich having
the chief power amongst the Huns, in concert with Irnach, attacked the
Goths as refractory vassals, but they were utterly defeated by Walamir,
and a small remnant escaped to the strong defenses called Hunniwar in
Pannonia. Irnach fled into Asia to a part of the Hunnish dominions
called lesser Scythia, and his subsequent career was too insignificant to have
been recorded.
Odoacer, who was
destined to put an end to the Roman empire in the West a few years after, was a
person of no great distinction in the Hunnish court at the time of
the death of Attila; and Theodoric, soon afterwards king of Italy, was born
from a concubine of one of the Gothic kings two years after his death nearly on
the day of the victory gained over the Huns by Walamir. The account of a
contemporary writer preserved by Photius, states that he was the son
of Walamir, who had prognosticated the future greatness of his son, by the
emission of sparks from his body, a phenomenon by which the horse of
Tiberius and the ass of Severus, (probably Libius Severus) are said
by him to have presignated the elevation of their riders. Malchus and
some other writers call him the son of Theodemir. Gibbon has followed the
latter, and does not appear to have known the doubt which exists on the
subject. A coin of Theodoric having the head of Zeno on the reverse, appears to
testify, that, like Odoacer, he held the crown of Italy in nominal
subordination at least to the Eastern emperor.
The particulars of
the death of Attila are involved in considerable obscurity. The chronicler
Marcellinus, who wrote in the next century, asserts that he was murdered by a
concubine, suborned by the patrician Aetius, and indeed it is difficult to
believe that any great act of political villainy should have been committed at
that time without the privity of that unprincipled statesman. Jordanes cites
from the lost history of Priscus, that Attila, according to the custom of his
nation, (probably meaning only the privilege of its kings) having added to the
innumerable multitude of his wives a very beautiful girl called Hildico,
which is merely another form of the name Hilda, after indulging in great
hilarity at the wedding, lay upon his back oppressed with wine and sleep; that
a redundancy of blood, which gushed from his nose, having found a passage into
his throat, put an end to his life by suffocation; and that inebriety thus
terminated all his glories. This story was doubtless promulgated by his
murderers, but is highly improbable, when we consider the great abstemiousness
of Attila, recorded by Priscus; and, as marriage was to him a circumstance of
very frequent occurrence, it is not likely that he should have departed from
his usual habits of sobriety on this occasion.
Sigonius and
Callimachus state the name of the lady to have been Hildico, but Olaus, Thurocz,
and Bonfinius, call her Mycolth, daughter of the king of Bactria,
and Ritius varies that name to Muzoth, while Diaconus, the
Alexandrine Chronicle, and Johannes Malalas simply call her a Hunnish prostitute,
by which opprobrious term the Christian writers would probably have styled any
of his subsidiary wives. Johannes Malalas also says that the girl was
suspected of having murdered him, but that others assert he was murdered by his
sword-bearer at the instigation of Aetius. He is said to have struck his foot
painfully, as he entered the bridal chamber, on which, addressing himself, as
it was supposed, to the angel of death, he exclaimed, “If it be time, I come”;
and on the night of his marriage his favourite horse died suddenly.
The most ancient
legends of Germany and Scandinavia are filled with the adventures of Attila,
and of the ever memorable Hilda (the Hildico of Jordanes) in a
variety of forms, and with much confusion of circumstances and appellations.
The celebrated old German lay of the Nibelungians treats of this
matter. A great part of the poetical Edda of the Scandinavians is occupied with
the detail of these transactions, and the old sagas called Volsunga, Wilkma,
and Nifflunga Saga, are records of the same. A careful
consideration of the old Scandinavian documents, together with the undeniable
evidence of Priscus, that Attila ruled over the Northern islands, makes it
pretty clear, that the Danes have no real history previous to the occupation of
their territory by Attila, and that most of their ancient traditions are
reminiscences of that mighty conqueror, (who was in some respects the Odin of
the North, as he was also the Arthur of Great Britain) or at least blended with
them.
In the Heltenbuch we
read of the emperor Otnit, certainly meaning Attila, and attributing to
him a name almost identical with Odin. Odin or Woden having been
worshipped by the Scythian tribes in Asia, and probably being one with the
sword-God, of whose type Attila had possessed himself, the name would be
naturally bestowed upon Attila by those who acknowledged his divine title. An
ancient medallion represents Attila with teraphim or a head upon his breast,
and Odin was said to have preserved the head of Mimer cut off which gave
oracular responses.
Attila is named
Sigurd in several Scandinavian legends; Sigge is a name for Odin,
and Sigtun his place of abode, all being connected with the
word Sigr, victory. Sigi the son of Odin acquired dominion in
France according to the prose Edda, and Volsunga saga says he was king of the
Huns. The Edda states also that Sigi’s brother Balldr, who fell
by an act of fratricide, (meaning Bleda) ruled in Westphalia. Those statements
actually designate Attila, who was looked upon as the son or incarnation of the
sword-god, being the only Hun who ever had power in France. It must be borne in
mind that, while the oldest Northern legends connect Odin with the Huns, the
existence of that nation was unknown in Europe till 78 years before the death
of Attila.
The Edda of Snorro states
that Hlidskialf was the throne of Odin, and in Atla quida st. 14.
the same name is given to the tower or dwelling-place of Attila. That Valhall was
the residence of Odin is universally known; the abode of Attila bears that name
in the Edda, Atla mal in Gr. st. 14. In the same
Edda, in Sigurd. quid. Fafh. 3. st 34, Hilda
says that Attila compelled her to marry against her will; and in Brynh.
quid, she says that Odin condemned her to involuntary wedlock. In Brynh.
quid. 1. st. 14. and in Volospa it is said that
Odin conversed with, and obtained responses from the head of Mimer cut off,
but, in Wilkina saga c. 147, Sigurd, who is unquestionably
Attila, kills Mimer. That Odin and his followers were Asiatics, or Asians,
as they are styled in the Edda, perfectly accords with the origin of the Huns
who had so lately entered Europe; nor does there appear to be the slightest
ground for the suggestion of the Danish historian Suhm, that Odin was a
person driven out of Asia into the North of Europe by the conquests of
Mithridates, except the antiquity which, without proof, he was desirous of
giving to the events detailed in the Scandinavian records; whereas it is most
probable that no such individual bearing the name of Odin ever existed in the
North of Europe, though that opinion may not be palatable to the Danish
antiquarians. Attila is called in the Edda the son of Buddla, a name which
seems closely connected with Buddha, the Asiatic title of the God Woden or
Odin. Buddla is stated in Fundinn Noregur to have
conquered Saxony and established himself there, but not to have been himself a
Saxon. The exclamation attributed to Attila, “Lo, I am the hammer of the
world”, has evident reference to the Scandinavian hammer of the God Thor; and,
as he is identified with the war-god, his sister and wife Hilda is the
war-goddess, of the Northern nations.
According to Olaus Magnus, Hother (the
same who according to the oldest mythology of the North killed Balder son of
Odin, from jealousy, on account of a woman), was set on the throne of Sweden by
his brother Attila; and Attila succeeded Hothinus, that is Odin.
This Hother, according to Vegtam’s quida (known as the
Descent of Odin), in the verse Edda, was brother to Balder, as he is above
stated to have been brother to Attila. Hother himself according
to Vegtam’s quida was killed by Ali, (sometimes called Vali) who
in the old Swedish version is Atle, that is Attila, and in the Latin
Atlas, another form of his name, son of Odin and Rinda; therefore all the
three were brothers.
I entertain no
doubt that this famous tale of fratricide refers to the known murder of Bleda
by his brother Attila, with a duplication of the act of fratricide, like that
which occurs in all the tales of the murder of Attila himself; the cause assigned
for the first act of fratricide being jealousy, for the second, revenge. Olaus Magnus
states in his appendix, that Attila hated the Danes so, that he set a dog to
reign over them, (which has some reference to the account in the Provencal
romance that Attila was himself begotten by a dog, and had canine features) and
that he was betrayed by his wife, who robbed him, and fled from him, and
conspired with his son against him. In p. 827, we find another Attila king of
Sweden, who also conquers the Danes, and dies by murder. Olaus compiled
his work from vernacular legends, and in these fables we cannot fail to
recognize the reminiscences of the mighty Hun, and his close connection with
Odin, and the earliest mythology and story of the north; and they are confirmatory
of the fact asserted by Priscus, that he did rule over the maritime countries
of the Baltic. But the Scandinavian mythology not only begins with Attila,
either, doing the same things that are averred concerning Odin, or called his
son, but it also ends with him; for the prose Edda concludes with stating that
this Ali, Atle, or Attila (who is stated in c 15. to be the son of Odin,
powerful in military valour, and in archery, which was the special weapon of
the Huns), is to survive with Vidar the God of silence, after the destruction
of all the other Gods, and reign as before upon Ida; that is, that
Attila was expected to come again in power, as appears by so many accounts of
him both under his own name and the romantic name of Arthur. He is the son of
Odin, taken as the sword-god or spirit of war and victory; he is Odin himself,
looking to his achievements upon earth. The strange tale of the deception of
the Jews in Crete in the reign of Attila, by a person pretending to come in the
power of Moses as he did, throws some light on the assertion that Ali or Attila
was ultimately to reign on Ida, the Cretan mountain, which was a type of that
in Asia.
In the
Scandinavian legends the catastrophe of Attila’s life is told and repeated
under different names with some variation. In the first place he appears as the
son of Sigmund, possessing a celebrated sword called Gram, and a wonderful grey
horse Grana, under the name Sigurd, a Hunnish king, superior to all
his contemporaries in martial prowess, the vanquisher of many kings in France,
sojourning for some time with the Burgundian monarch, betrothed to and lying
with Hilda, surnamed Brynhilda, the sister of king Attila, fraudulently
giving her up to Gunnar or Gunther, prince of Burgundy, and espousing the
daughter of Hilda surnamed Grim or Chrim-Hilda, and murdered at the
instigation of the revengeful woman he had forsaken by one of the Burgundian
(otherwise called Nibelungian) princes, but not before he had slain one of
his assailants, and after his death she burns herself, together with much
wealth and many of her slaves.
He next appears in
the same legends as Attila (Atli), son of Buddla, a king victorious over
the Saxons near the Rhine, espousing Hilda, surnamed Grim or Chrim-Hilda,
the widow of Sigurd, and having not only the same wife, but the same sword Gram
and horse Grana, and his wife excites another Burgundian prince to murder him,
having previously served up to him at supper her own children by him, after
which she attempts to destroy herself. Then she is conveyed to the court
of another king who had married her daughter Hilda, called Svan-Hilda, where
another catastrophe takes place, a child of the same name as before, Erpur,
is killed, and she likewise orders a pile for the purpose of burning herself. The
first half of the old German Nibelungenlied relates the adventures of the
person called Sigurd by the Scandinavians, under the name Sigfried, his
marriage with Chrim-Hilda, and his murder by the revenge of Bryn-Hilda.
The second part
relates the marriage of the widow to Attila king of the Huns, her attempts to
avenge the death of Sigfried on the Burgundian princes, and her
destruction by Theodoric. It is strange that the Danish historian Suhm,
although in his chronology he has made these events coincide exactly with the
era of Attila, appears never to have suspected, or did not choose to perceive,
that the Attila mentioned in the Sagas and Edda was the renowned king of the
Huns; nor did it ever occur to him that Sigurd king of the Huns could be no other
person. On the contrary, he supposes the Attila there mentioned to have been a
petty king over some Huns settled in Groningen. That Attila, brother of Brynhilda and
son of Buddla, was Attila king of the Huns is certified by the
Nibelungenlied and the copious detail of his adventures in Wilkinga saga;
and the Danish editors of the late edition of the tragic Edda are satisfied of
that simple fact, though they see no further into the unravelling of their
confused traditions concerning him.
That Sigurd
the Hunnish king of the Edda and Sagas, the Sigfried of the
old German poem, was Attila, appears indisputably from the following
considerations:—He had the same wife, the same sword, and the same horse; he
was king of the Huns, and the greatest warrior of his age; he was engaged with
the Burgundians, partly in alliance and partly in warfare; he vanquished many
princes on the French side of the Rhine: all which applies to Attila. He was
exactly contemporary with Attila, according to the chronology of those who did
not suspect their identity. He was not only married to, but murdered by Hilda,
as well as Attila.
It is utterly
impossible that such another king should have existed at the same period, and
been engaged on the same theatre of action with similar success, and under like
circumstances, without coming into collision with him, and that no vestige of
such a character should appear in the authentic histories of the times, still
less could there have been such another Hunnish king at the same
time. His identity with Attila is proved by his renown and achievements, as
well as by the catastrophe of his life; and in a still more striking manner by
the assertion of Brynhilda in the Edda, that, if Sigurd had
lived a little longer, he would have obtained universal dominion.
In Sinfiotla lok is
found another form of the story of Attila. Sinfiotl is the son of
Sigmund the Volsungian; he and Gunnar woo the same person, on which
account he slays Gunnar, and in his turn is murdered by Borg-Hilda, said there
to be sister to Gunnar.
In Oddrunar Gratr there
is another version of the tale. Gunnar is surprised in an intrigue with Oddruna,
sister of Attila, whereupon Attila puts him to death in a cellar filled with
vipers, and has the heart of his brother Hagen cut out. In Oddruna, sister
of Attila, intriguing with Gunnar, may be recognized, under another name, Brynhilda,
sister of Attila, fraudulently married to him. In Atla mal and
Ada quida, Attila is said to have decoyed the Burgundian princes to his
court to avenge the death of their sister Brynhilda, who had burnt herself
after they had killed Sigurd, to have cut out the heart of Hagen, and thrown
Gunnar amongst the vipers, in consequence of which his wife, the sister of
Gunnar, killed his children and himself, and tried to commit suicide. In
the Nibelungenlied, instead of being decoyed by Attila, they go
treacherously, at the instigation of Hilda, to murder Attila, and are put to
death as above stated.
Volsunga saga
treats fully of the history of Sigurd, and subsequently of Attila; and at the
end thereof as well as in Regner Lodbrok’s saga, the name of Kraka is
given to Aslauga, the daughter of Sigurd, which tallies with that of Kreka,
the principal wife of Attila, recorded by Prisons. In Wilkina or Niflunga saga,
Attila appears under the name of Sigurd Swein, and the Burgundian father
of Gunnar is called Alldrian instead of Giuka. After the death
of Sigurd Swein his widow is married to Attila, who being disgusted
with her atrocities, permits Theodoric to kill her with the sword in his
presence, to prevent her, as he states, from murdering Attila; whereby
Sigurd Swein is distinctly identified with Sigurd Sigmundson,
and with Sigfried of the Nibelungenlied, whose widow is killed in the
same manner by Theodoric. Afterwards a younger Burgundian prince, Alldrian,
son of Hagen, entices Attila into a cavern in a lonely mountain, where he
discovers to him the amassed wealth of the Nibelungians and of
Sigurd, and succeeds in blocking him up in the cavern, and tells him to satiate
himself with the riches he had desired. Alldrian then returns to
Bryn-Hilda the widow of Gunnar, who had caused the death of Sigurd and receives
him with high favor on account of his having slain Attila. This
account tallies with that of the enclosure of king Arthur in Mount Etna, where
he was supposed to be still living, and from whence he was expected to return
and rule once more upon earth. In the same saga the affairs of king Arthur are
mixed up with those of Attila, and in an earlier chapter Attila sends a
messenger to woo Herka (perhaps the same name as the Kreka of
Priscus, wife of Attila, and called Cerca (by his Latin
translators) under the feigned name of Sigurd.
In Saemund’s Edda,
Sigurd is called the Southron, agreeing with the appellation of halls of the
south given in another passage thereof to the residence of Attila. The legend
of Hedin is a confused inversion of the Attilane tragedy. The same
enchantress Hilda is the occasion of bloodshed; Hedin, a name nearly identical
with Odin, representing Attila, and Hagen, his antagonist, bearing the same
name as one of the Burgundian conspirators. The tale is an inversion of the
conflict between Attila and the Burgundian princes. That it belongs to Hunnish history,
and not merely to the Scandinavian population, is clear, because Saxo
Grammaticus says that Hedin fought a battle which lasted three days with the
king of the Huns.
The ancient
chronology of the Danes respecting the inhabitants of Scandinavia is in a great
measure founded upon Fundinn Noregur or Norwegian origins, a
genealogical work in the old Scandinavian tongue, evidently written in the
reign of Harald Harfager, who first united all Norway under the dominion
of an individual (in 888 according to Suhm), for the purpose of showing
that through his female ancestors he was descended from all the great families
of the North; from Odin, through one line, from Buddla, the father of
Attila and Brynhilda through another, from Sigurd through another,
from Norr, Gorr, &c. The Danish historians have shown much want
of discernment in believing this fabrication. The falsehood of these
genealogies, which were forgeries of great political importance to Harald, may
be at once demonstrated by the descent from Sigurd, whose death, if he be
considered as Attila, took place in 453, and, taken as he is by the Danish
historians, is placed a very few years earlier, that is just long enough before
to give time for the last events of his life to be acted over again under the
name of Attila. Yet the pedigree gives, 1. Sigurd; 2. Aslauga, his
daughter by Bryn-Hilda, married to Regner Lodbrok; 3. Sigurd the
snake-eyed; 4. Aslauga, his daughter; 5. Sigurd the hart; 6. Ragn-Hilda,
mother of Harald Harfager; allowing only five generations for the space of
435 years between the death of Sigurd, taken at the latest
period, and the monarchy of Harald, which makes each person in the pedigree 87
years old at the time of the birth of the child that succeeds. Such an
absurdity throws complete discredit upon the whole tissue of genealogies,
evidently a clumsy fabrication to reconcile the North to the usurpations of
Harald, and it strikes at the root of the whole frame of ancient Danish story.
In a note to a
short poem at the end of Helga, I apologized for a supposed confusion in my
Icelandic translations between Aslauga, the daughter of Sigurd Sigmundson,
surnamed Fafnisbana, who lived in the fifth century, and Aslauga,
wife of Regner Lodbrok, daughter of Sigurd Swein, asserted to
have lived in the eighth. I now retract that apology, into which I was misled
by the disingenuous chronology of Suhm. The Fundinn Noregur distinctly
says that the wife of Regner was Aslauga, the child of Brynhilda daughter
of Buddla, and of Sigurd Fafnisbana, who lived, by the assent of all
writers, in the fifth century, and who was no other than Attila; and Nifflunga Saga,
relating his death and the vengeance of Bryn-Hilda, calls the same person by
the name of Sigurd Swein. The Danish historian, finding himself thwarted
by the gross anachronism in the false pedigree of Harald, attempted to bolster
it up by splitting the same individuals into separate persons in different
centuries, ringing the changes on the names Sigurd and Aslauga; to such a
degree could nationality and a desire to uphold the truth and authenticity of
Scandinavian legends warp the understanding, and even apparently the candour,
of an antiquarian, whose disquisitions were too minute to allow a probability
of his not having suspected the imposture. The story of Regner Lodbrok
is a blending of the adventures of the grandfather of king Harald Harfager (a
northern sea-rover, killed in the eighth or ninth century by Ella in
Northumberland), with some of the celebrated Attilane reminiscences
concerning Hilda, Sigurd, and Aslauga, who may have been the younger
Hilda; and consequently we read that the sons of Regner, with a great
army, proceeded in his lifetime to Luneberg in Saxony, with
the intention of marching against Rome, but abandoned the expedition on further
consideration, a passage from the life of Attila, ridiculously misapplied
to the offspring of a Northern pirate. The name Regner appears to
have been Hunnish, for Agathias mentions that Regnar, general
of the Goths, who attempted to assassinate Narses, was not a Goth, but of the
tribe of Bittores, a Hunnish race. Regner Lodbrok
himself is stated to be the son of another Sigurd (Sigurd Ring) and another
Hilda (Alf-Hilda), so incessantly are the changes rung upon these feigned names
of the sera of Attila. It appears that the poetical Edda had been written long
enough before the reign of Harald Harfager for the particulars
related in it to have obtained credence, and before the names Dane and Denmark were
established in the north of Europe, probably at the close of the sixth century.
It will be
observed that, in all the various versions of the catastrophe which cut short
the life of this mighty potentate, a revengeful woman of the name of Hilda
bears a conspicuous part; that some false play, by which she was dishonoured,
seems invariably to be the cause of her virulence, and that the Burgundian
family are always mixed up in the transaction, with great confusion between an
elder and a younger Hilda. Both Cassiodorus and Prosper Aquitanicus testify
in their chronicles the fact that Gundicar or Gunnar, the Burgundian,
was slain by the Huns not long after his treaty with Aetius, showing thereby
that the later legends have some foundation in reality. The result of these
various relations, taking into consideration that Priscus states Attila to have
married his daughter Eskam, seems to be, that he, as told of him under the
name of Sigurd, had a daughter by his sister Hilda, who is sometimes called
Bryn-hilda, sometimes Hilda i bryniu, or the mailed
Hilda, described as a warlike woman and enchantress; that he had betrothed
himself to her, but not married her, and that he afterwards compelled her
against her will to marry the prince of Burgundy; that he subsequently in 448
espoused the younger Hilda, (sometimes called Chrim or Grim Hilda,
sometimes Gudruna or divine enchantress, as the other Hilda is also
called Oddruna or enchantress of the arrow head) his daughter by his
sister, (Brynhilda, sometimes also called Grimhilda) in consequence of
which she, the elder Hilda, excited the Burgundian princes to attempt to slay
him; but that he put them to death, and was afterwards murdered by a younger
prince of that nation at her instigation; that the catastrophe did not take
place on the night of his marriage with Hilda, but at a later period and on the
occasion of another wedding, though the previous union with Hilda was the cause
of his murder. Coupling these particulars with the account of Priscus, that in
448 he wedded his own daughter Eskam, of other historians that he died on
the night of his wedding with Mycolth, and of others that Hilda was
suspected of having murdered him, it seems not improbable that Eskam was
the younger Hilda, his daughter by his sister whom he had compelled to marry
the Burgundian, and through whose revenge his murder was effected, with the aid
of one of the Burgundian princes, on the night of his marriage with Mycolth in
453; Gunnar, otherwise called Gunther or Gundicar, having been previously excited
against him, and slain after an unsuccessful attempt upon his life. It is very
probable, that Aetius was privy to the conspiracy, as Marcellinus has
positively asserted.
The Wilkina saga
contains the detail of a variety of exploits by Attila, his victory over Osantrix king
of Denmark, with his gigantic champions Aspilian and his
brothers, his conquest of Russia from Waldemar, and the defeat of Hermanric by
his arms, some of which events may perhaps be founded in truth, but they are
discredited by the anachronism of introducing as his coadjutor, Theodoric of
Verona, meaning Theodoric afterwards king of Italy, who was not born till two
years after the death of Attila; but, in this and in various other relations be
has been confounded with an earlier Theodoric, or the actions of Theodemir the
vassal of Attila have been attributed to Theodoric, who was either his son or
his nephew. Hermanric the Ostrogoth had been probably dead before the
birth of Attila, and the supposed victories over him, and the alleged
cooperation of Theodoric, were perhaps connected with the fabulous account of
Attila’s great longevity; but the age of 120 years attributed to him by the
Hungarian writers, being that of Moses, seems to have arisen out of the notion
that he came in the spirit of Moses, and was in fact alter Moses.
According to the
statement of Priscus, as related by Jordanes, the attendants of Attila
abstained from entering the bridal chamber for a considerable time, thinking
that he was pleased to lie late; but at length, after calling loudly in vain,
having forced the door they found him dead, and the girl, whom he had espoused,
dejected and weeping under the covering of her veil. Thereupon, according to
the customary manner of mourning the dead amongst his countrymen, they
cicatrized their faces, in order, as the historian says, that he might be
bewailed by the blood of men, and not by the tears of women. A silken tent was
pitched in the open plain, and there his body was borne and lay for some time
in state; while the most distinguished of the Hunnish cavalry
careered around him, in the manner customary at the games or tournaments of the
Roman circus, in which the horsemen used to be divided into four parties
clothed with uniforms of different colours, and they chanted during their
evolutions his praise in funereal accents, saying, “Attila, the chief king of
the Huns, son of Mundiuc, lord of the bravest nations, endowed with an
extent of power unheard of before his time, having alone possessed all the
kingdoms of Scythia and Germany, and terrified both empires of the Roman city,
having captured or trampled on their towns and having consented to receive an
annual tribute, being appeased by entreaties to spare those which were not yet
sacked, when he had brought all those things to a prosperous conclusion, ended
his life, not by hostile violence or by the treachery of his own people, but in
the full enjoyment of the security of his nation, amidst festivities, and
without any sense of pain. Who would not esteem such a termination of his life
desirable!
After the
equestrian exercises had been performed, and the dirge, of which the above
substance has been preserved to us, had been chanted, they buried him secretly.
He had three several coffins or rather biers, the first decorated with gold,
the second with silver, the third with iron, signifying by those symbols that
the three metals appertained to so powerful a king; with evident reference to
the prophetic monarchies of Daniel, the gold representing the Babylonian, the
silver that of the Medes, to both of which he pretended in the title he had
assumed, and the iron both the Roman empire, and the deified sword by virtue of
which he ruled. He was interred at night, after which a vast heap of spoils was
made over his tomb, or rather over his body; and they buried with him arms of
his enemies which had been taken in battle, trappings studded with gems, and
the banners of various nations.
After this
ceremony, the Huns celebrated his funeral rites with profane feasting and
wassail, and the supper is said to have been served up in four courses, the
first on plate of gold, the second of silver, the third of brass, the fourth of
iron, including the third or brazen Macedonian kingdom with the three
others which had been before signified; and it is observable that the
historians, who have recorded these remarkable facts, do not seem to have had
any notion of their apparent mystical intention, and their ignorance of the
secret meaning affords strong reason for believing their report.
The slaves by
whose labour the grave of the Hunnish monarch was excavated, were put
to death as a sacrifice to his manes, and, as Jordanes states, to deter
curiosity from prying into and pilfering the wealth which was interred with
him; but it is difficult to understand how the place of his interment could be
rendered secret, even by murdering the workmen, if the tomb was covered with
the spoils of nations, and it is most probable that the spoils were all buried
and laid over the site of the body, and not over the tomb externally. With like
view to secrecy and security, the body of Alaric had been deposited under the
bed of the river Busentinus. The Hungarian writers say that Attila was
buried near Kaiazo or Cheveshusa (a Hunnish word
of Teutonic origin, meaning Cheve’s house) where the Hunnish kings Cheve, Cadica,
and Balamber, were entombed.
The identity of
Attila with the Arthur of romance has been pointed out by the author of Nimrod.
It is by no means improbable, that, when the arms of Attila extended themselves
successfully over the North of Europe, the Saxon sea-kings, whom he, being
unprovided with a maritime force, could not reduce under his dominion, may have
removed to England in some measure to avoid his ascendancy; and, although we
have no reason to believe that Attila ever sent any military expedition into
Great Britain, the Scandinavian legends say that his companion Theodoric sent
Herbert his nephew thither to king Arthur, who can be demonstrated to be no
other than Attila, to ask for the hand of his daughter Hilda in marriage, but
there is a story of fraud wherever the nuptials of Hilda are mentioned, and
Herbert in this account draws a frightful picture of Theodoric to disgust her,
and marries her himself. It may be surmised, that, as it was natural for the
Britons, who were sorely pressed by the Saxons, to apply to the great conqueror
of Europe, he may have sent them assurances of his good-will and intention of
succouring them hereafter, and have initiated them in his Antichristian
pretensions and claim to universal monarchy.
From such secret
communications the Druidical freemasonry may have originated; and Olaus Magnus,
who styles Arthur king over Britain, Ireland, Scandinavia, Denmark, and
the rest of Europe to the Palus Maeotis, which could not have been
predicated of any man except Attila, mentions that he instituted certain
families or societies of illustrious men, which seems actually to
designate lodges of illuminati.
The following
extract from a MS. by the author of Nimrod, which he has kindly
communicated, will preclude the necessity of my entering further into this part
of the subject. It seems to me clear that the Arthurian fable is a
Druidical location of Attila, as bead of the Antichristian power, in Great
Britain. “This topic may be handled to better satisfaction by showing to
what real man and actions the unreal Arthur of Britain had reference, and why
mortals so widely removed from the era of the lower Western empire, as those
who seem to revive in his person, have been raised up, like phantoms, to cross
our path in history.
The Arthur of
romance was king in AD 452, and the siege perileux in
the centre of the round table, bore an inscription that in that year the seat
ought to be filled, and the quest of the Saint Grail achieved; yet Arthur
failed of doing either. Bearing that date of romance in mind, we must observe
that Arthur was armed with a sword brought to him from heaven, in right of
which he was (like a second Orion) called Llaminawg, the sword-bearer. The
celestial sword was so interwoven with his life, that, until it was flung into
the water, he could not depart from this world for his appointed sojourn
in Damalis or Avallon.
It seems to
have contained the divine part of his nature. In Tyran le Blanc
we read of Arthur imprisoned in a silken cage, having life, but void of
knowledge and discernment, save that he could answer all questions by gazing
fixedly upon the naked blade of his sword Excalibur. When that was taken
from him, he no longer knew, perceived, or remembered anything.
That sword was his
mind and his memory. Ireland, the Hebrides, Iceland, Scandinavia, Denmark,
Germany and France, were conquered by Arthur, according to the accounts given
in the Bruts and in Romance; he prevailed over the Roman empire of
the West, and (as Leslie bishop of Ross says) over that of the East also.
Attila king of the Huns claimed sovereignty over the Scythian and Sarmatic nations
in right of the sword of Mars, not a weapon used by that God, but an idol of
him, immemorially revered in Scythia, though seldom seen upon earth, of which
he boasted himself to be the possessor. Most of the Northern nations seem to
have been obedient to his power, and both sections of Constantine’s empire were
humbled by his arms into the payment of tribute. Arthur is stated to have
passed into Gaul, and gained a great victory in Champagne over the roman
general Lucius Tiberius, and was marching on to attack the Roman emperor
himself in Italy, (whom Geoflrey ap Arthur calls Leo) when the
intrigues of Medrawd the Pict, and Guenever recalled him
home, and shortly after destroyed him. The Hun fought a great battle in
Champagne against the general Flavius Aetius, and soon after marched against
Italy, where he was encountered by pope Leo, and by agreement with him,(but for
what private reasons I leave for historians to enquire) returned to his own
country. This was in AD 452, the very same year in which the
Romantic Arthur should have filled the siege perileux, but did
not. A few months completed the life of Attila, by means (as it has been
supposed) of an unfaithful wife and foreign or domestic treason. It may be
asked, is it possible, that two celestial sword-bearers should have been
thought, or even feigned, to spring up, conquer Europe, successfully assail the
Roman empire, return home, and perish under circumstances so minutely similar,
and a perfect correspondence of date? True it is that the Brutic Arthur
bears date considerably later than the Romantic, but it also true that the
later date is only a cryptographic expression or cypher to denote the earlier
one. Arthur, say the Brute, withdrew to Avallon in AD 542,
which three figures are merely an anagram of 452”.—“Of Arthur the sword-bearer
it is said that he disappeared mysteriously from the earth, to which he was one
day to return; Niebelungenlied speaks of the disappearance of
the Hun, as doubting whether he was swallowed up by the earth, concealed in the
mountains, or carried off by the Devil; and a Norse saga describes him as being
enclosed alive in a hollow mountain, amidst accumulated treasures”.—“Alain
Bouchard (Grand Chronique de Bretagne, fol. 53) pretends that one
Daniel Dremruz or the Red-visaged, reigned in Little Britain from 689
to 730, carried his arms into Germany, was elected king of the Germans, and
proceeded to Pavia, where he married the daughter of the emperor Leo, He
returned to Armorica where he was the most powerful monarch of all the West.
His title is equivalent to Florid-faced (Gwrid ap Gwrid Glau) an
Arthurian title. He is said to have descended from the Earls of Cornwall,
Arthur’s native province. Like Arthur he had no real existence; like Attila he
ended his career of conquest by an Italian expedition, but did not penetrate
beyond the north of Italy, during the reign of an emperor Leo who did not exist
at the time mentioned. The circumstances identify him with both Arthur and
Attila”.—“In a great lake near Nantes is an island called isle d’Un,
meaning Hun, in which is a great stone with a hole in it, under which a giant
is said to sleep, who contended against Christianity, represented in the person
of St. Martin of Tours; and it is traditional that a virgin is hereafter to put
her arm through the hole and raise the stone, and resuscitate the giant and
convert him. Martin died before the reign of Attila, but was uncle to St. Patric,
his contemporary. The sleeping Hun is evidently Attila, and the legend
furnishes another proof of his anti-Christian character, and of his identity
with Arthur, abiding in, and expected to return from, the island of Avallon”.
It is much to be
regretted that the particulars of the life of this conspicuous man have not
been more perfectly preserved, but if we assume from what has been premised,
that which I firmly believe, that the mythology and the early history of the
North originates in Attila, that the Arthurian legends have like reference to
him, and that the Antichristian expectations, which had centered in
him, continued to be cherished in the mysticism of romances, giving a tinge to
whatever literature did not spring from monastic sources, we cannot fail to
perceive how great was the depth and durability of his spiritual influence and
machinations, as well as his political power; and we may estimate what would
have been the grievous consequences, if his career had not been cut short
before he had had time to complete the subjugation of Europe and consolidate
his Antichristian empire.
His character may
be easily traced from his conduct and achievements. Simple and abstemious in
his habits, he gave no cause to the humblest of his followers to look with an
evil eye on his exaltation. He was hardy, strong, active, and distinguished in
martial exercises; silent and thoughtful in his hours of festivity; his
determinations were peremptory, their execution rapid and effectual.
Superstition and
terror extended his influence, but the happiness of his subjects, his kindness,
justice, and success, gave strength to his authority. He afforded safety to all
who were overshadowed by his power, while he threatened certain destruction to
all who resisted his dominion, and unrelenting persecution to all who fled from
it.
The lamentable
state of Europe, at the time of his accession, gives reason to conceive the
delight, with which the industrious portion of the nations under his government
must have hailed its protection; while the rapidity of his conquests, and the
belief that he acted under a divine delegation, ensured to him the enthusiastic
confidence of his soldiers. Partial and corrupt administration of the laws,
tyrannical and ruinous exactions, inroads of barbarous marauders, wavering and
imbecile policy, had annihilated the security of every individual within the
limits of the Roman empire; and incessant strife, between the various nations
who were pressing upon each other and upon the Romans for subsistence, had
spread havoc and starvation without its confines over a large portion of
Europe; but, wherever the ascendancy of Attila was established, the scene of
bloodshed was immediately removed beyond its boundaries; the wealth, which he
snatched by force of arms, or extorted by negotiation, from his opponents,
continued to flow into his territory, and its interior presented an unexampled
scene of contentment and security.
Attila was perhaps
the mightiest of those, who have distinguished themselves for a few brief years
on the theatre of earthly glory; and, if he had not been cut short in the
plenitude of his strength by an overruling Providence, we have every reason to
believe that he must erelong have obtained the undisputed possession of Europe,
and neither the Persians of Asia, nor the Vandals of Africa, could have offered
any serious opposition to the indefinite extension of his empire. But his
personal influence was the magic girdle which held together the immense league
that had been cemented under his authority, and the moment his commanding
talents were removed by a sudden and unexpected death, the power, which had
been a single-handed and resistless weapon in his grasp, appeared too mighty to
be wielded by any person of inferior qualifications.
The establishment
of his government over the habitable world was inconsistent with the spread of
Christianity, and the Almighty will, which had sent him as a scourge on the
population of the Roman empire, permitted him not to complete the overthrow of
true religion; but annihilated by his decease the great fabric he had
constructed, which was immediately dissolved by internal conflict in the
absence of his absolute and decisive authority. The mighty one was gathered to
his fathers; the power of the Huns, which had shed a baleful and meteorous gleam
over the age in which he lived, was speedily obscured; their generation was
lost, and their name extinguished; and the historian, after searching amongst
the records of time for the imperfect relation of his achievements, is left to
conjecture the city of his abode, the manner of his death, the place of his
interment, and even the language that he spoke, and in which his decrees had
been promulgated from the confines of China to the waters of the German ocean.
|
|